Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n believe_v faith_n infallibility_n 5,890 5 11.4885 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A05212 A disputation of the Church wherein the old religion is maintained. V.M.C.F.E. Lechmere, Edmund, d. 1640?; F. E., fl. 1629. 1629 (1629) STC 15348; ESTC S100251 235,937 466

There are 51 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

pastor_n in_o it_o ever_o if_o that_o be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n appoint_v such_o till_o all_o meet_a 32._o edantorigines_n ecclesiarun_n svarum_n evoluamt_a ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suorum_fw-la ita_fw-la per_fw-la successiones_fw-la ab_fw-la enitio_fw-la decurientem_fw-la ut_fw-la primus_fw-la ille_fw-la episcopus_fw-la a●q●e_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolis_n vel_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la viris_fw-la qui_fw-la tamen_fw-la cum_fw-la apostolis_n per●everaverint_fw-la habuerit_fw-la auctorem_fw-la &_o antecessorem_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la modo_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la sensus_fw-la suos_fw-la deferunt_fw-la tert._n prescript_n c._n 32._o and_o you_o must_v not_o ask_v they_o for_o they_o will_v show_v you_o none_o but_o lie_v person_n let_v we_o know_v what_o council_n they_o have_v keep_v and_o where_o what_o nation_n they_o have_v convert_v unto_o christ_n and_o by_o who_o what_o saint_n and_o martyr_n have_v be_v among_o they_o what_o church_n they_o have_v erect_v what_o heretic_n they_o have_v condemn_v and_o where_o and_o how_o and_o with_o what_o nation_n and_o prince_n they_o have_v communicate_v and_o bring_v good_a evidence_n to_o prove_v it_o if_o this_o be_v the_o true_a church_n conceal_v she_o not_o god_n be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o his_o church_n if_o these_o people_n be_v the_o company_n of_o holy_a one_o let_v we_o see_v their_o action_n and_o good_a work_n if_o there_o be_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o such_o man_n let_v we_o see_v their_o monument_n otherwise_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v indeed_o any_o such_o in_o the_o time_n betwixt_o waldo_n and_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n which_o be_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n if_o you_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v there_o be_v such_o all_o that_o time_n bring_v your_o proof_n let_v we_o know_v i_o say_v and_o shall_v repeat_v this_o question_n oft_o lest_o you_o witting_o do_v forget_v it_o where_o they_o be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n what_o they_o do_v who_o be_v of_o their_o communion_n or_o take_v notice_n at_o least_o of_o they_o as_o friend_n or_o foe_n what_o writer_n they_o have_v what_o bishop_n what_o counsel_n and_o this_o from_o age_n to_o age_n till_o you_o come_v to_o the_o apostle_n day_n the_o question_n be_v clear_a the_o matter_n be_v of_o fact_n the_o thing_n of_o moment_n you_o have_v be_v search_v these_o hundred_o year_n all_o paper_n and_o library_n and_o scroll_n where_o be_v your_o answer_n where_o be_v your_o evidence_n 6._o if_o this_o be_v all_o do_v which_o will_v be_v do_v when_o time_n run_v backward_o and_o when_o every_o thing_n whatsoever_o any_o minister_n for_o a_o shift_n can_v desire_v or_o imagine_v may_v be_v find_v every_o where_o there_o will_v remain_v yet_o a_o further_a task_n and_o that_o be_v to_o show_v that_o this_o religion_n of_o the_o waldense_n ch._n 2._o book_n 1._o ch._n be_v universal_a in_o regard_n of_o place_n or_o nation_n but_o i_o need_v not_o urge_v further_o for_o you_o be_v gravel_v in_o the_o very_a first_o if_o you_o shall_v offer_v to_o name_n hus_n or_o wickleffe_n i_o will_v proceed_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n with_o either_o of_o they_o and_o demand_v proof_n of_o their_o continual_a succession_n ever_o since_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v ascend_v and_o of_o their_o communion_n with_o nation_n to_o verify_v the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o our_o saviour_n intention_n in_o the_o new_a and_o of_o their_o agreement_n with_o you_o in_o all_o point_n i_o will_v demand_v evidence_n of_o all_o this_o of_o wickleffe_n of_o hus_n or_o of_o you_o for_o they_o and_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o face_n of_o that_o church_n her_o act_n and_o monument_n her_o writer_n her_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o with_o great_a reason_n before_o i_o believe_v it_o and_o embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o it_o and_o venture_v my_o soul_n in_o it_o because_o that_o which_o i_o demand_v be_v hitherto_o unknown_a not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o to_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o second_o chapter_n that_o no_o satisfaction_n be_v give_v by_o recourse_n to_o our_o church_n 7._o the_o nakedness_n of_o your_o cause_n appear_v manifest_o through_o the_o beggary_n of_o the_o waldense_n you_o will_v hide_v your_o self_n fain_o in_o our_o church_n and_o therefore_o fling_v of_o that_o poor_a shift_n as_o unsufficient_a you_o say_v next_o that_o your_o succession_n have_v be_v continue_v by_o us._n but_o you_o may_v not_o rest_v here_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o demand_v be_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o protestant_n that_o be_v of_o man_n profess_v the_o religion_n now_o currant_n in_o england_n bring_v your_o evidence_n that_o in_o every_o age_n there_o be_v some_o of_o these_o man_n we_o be_v not_o of_o your_o religion_n we_o have_v open_o condemn_v it_o as_o heretical_a in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o you_o do_v persecute_v we_o in_o england_n condemn_v many_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o believe_v so_o that_o if_o you_o take_v we_o to_o continue_v you_o to_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o to_o the_o apostle_n this_o continuation_n be_v not_o protestant_a whereas_o a_o protestant_a continuation_n be_v the_o thing_n we_o demand_v go_v not_o to_o fast_v but_o consider_v well_o what_o here_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n i_o demand_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n not_o of_o we_o you_o be_v to_o give_v account_n of_o your_o own_o predecessor_n not_o of_o i_o of_o protestant_n not_o of_o papist_n you_o must_v show_v your_o own_o card_n and_o not_o i_o if_o do_v mean_a to_o win_v the_o game_n we_o do_v frequent_v the_o mass_n believe_v unbloodie_a sacrifice_n adore_v the_o sacred_a host_n pray_v to_o saint_n worship_v angel_n believe_v a_o purgatory_n pray_v for_o the_o dead_a honour_n image_n we_o lay_v open_v our_o conscience_n to_o our_o priest_n and_o acknowledge_v in_o they_o power_n to_o absolve_v we_o and_o a_o divine_a precept_n oblige_v we_o to_o confess_v we_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v impart_v unto_o the_o reconcile_a power_n to_o redeem_v by_o good_a and_o penal_a work_n the_o temporal_a pain_n due_a to_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n by_o way_n of_o indulgence_n to_o release_v it_o we_o believe_v tradition_n merit_n justification_n by_o work_n observation_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o work_n of_o supererogation_n vow_n and_o a_o full_a canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n than_o you_o do_v in_o our_o hierarchy_n we_o have_v bishop_n priest_n deacon_n subdeacons_n and_o other_o all_o which_o in_o substance_n you_o have_v not_o but_o a_o outward_a appearance_n only_o we_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o pope_n a_o superiority_n over_o the_o other_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n in_o general_n approve_a counsel_n a_o infallibility_n and_o in_o each_o member_n of_o our_o community_n a_o obligation_n of_o conformity_n in_o judgement_n to_o the_o judgement_n and_o decree_n of_o these_o counsel_n in_o these_o and_o such_o other_o thing_n essential_a to_o our_o religion_n we_o be_v distinct_a from_o you_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v childish_a to_o name_v we_o for_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n it_o be_v true_a that_o you_o pretend_v to_o believe_v some_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v as_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n and_o some_o part_n of_o scripture_n nevertheless_o in_o other_o thing_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o religion_n we_o be_v distinct_a as_o by_o the_o premise_n it_o do_v appear_v all_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v believe_v something_n with_o the_o church_n but_o that_o suffice_v not_o to_o make_v they_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o it_o or_o among_o themselves_o jew_n believe_v something_n which_o christian_n do_v so_o do_v the_o turk_n and_o the_o naturalist_n who_o believe_v a_o god_n notwithstanding_o catholic_n jew_n heretic_n turk_n and_o naturalist_n be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o religion_n horse_n and_o ass_n be_v live_a creature_n but_o not_o of_o the_o same_o species_n with_o a_o man_n lutheran_n and_o caluiniste_n be_v not_o catholic_n the_o pope_n be_v no_o protestant_n the_o bishop_n of_o our_o church_n be_v not_o of_o your_o communion_n our_o priest_n be_v consecrate_v to_o say_v mass_n our_o people_n believe_v as_o their_o pastor_n all_o abhor_v your_o heresy_n and_o detest_v your_o schism_n your_o book_n be_v against_o our_o faith_n your_o law_n against_o the_o exercise_n of_o our_o religion_n you_o accuse_v we_o of_o idolatry_n superstition_n error_n heresy_n name_v other_o name_v your_o own_o and_o a_o continvall_a succession_n of_o they_o name_v not_o us._n your_o religion_n in_o that_o it_o be_v distinct_a from_o we_o be_v make_v up_o partly_o of_o new_a devise_a stuff_n partly_o of_o old_a rag_n leave_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o tear_a coat_n of_o jovinian_a donatus_n aerius_n 23._o vide_fw-la coll._n r._n chalc._n c._n 23._o
difference_n be_v not_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o letter_n book_n reflect_v well_o on_o all_o this_o when_o you_o answer_v the_o first_o book_n nor_o of_o any_o common_a good_a spirit_n for_o that_o will_v not_o contradict_v itself_o as_o they_o do_v each_o other_o this_o difference_n can_v be_v take_v but_o from_o the_o sense_n imagination_n and_o will_v of_o each_o party_n and_o therefore_o each_o party_n must_v be_v define_v by_o his_o own_o wit_n or_o by_o all_o his_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 75._o and_o here_o i_o answer_v to_o your_o common_a reply_n of_o the_o schoolman_n disagreement_n in_o schoole-question_n for_o notwithstanding_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n in_o matter_n not_o define_v by_o the_o church_n before_o or_o in_o their_o time_n all_o schoolman_n that_o be_v catholic_n do_v agree_v in_o faith_n and_o all_o do_v believe_v the_o same_o according_a as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o of_o other_o man_n each_o of_o they_o take_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o infallible_a therein_o believe_v all_o whatsoever_o she_o either_o have_v or_o hereafter_o will_v determine_v this_o do_v every_o school_n man_n every_o catholic_a divine_a every_o father_n 76._o this_o way_n s._n augustine_n do_v excuse_v s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o rebaptisation_n before_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o plenary_a or_o general_a council_n 18._o s._n aug_n li._n 1._o de_fw-fr bapt_n cont_n don._n c._n 18._o have_v determine_v what_o be_v to_o be_v embrace_v of_o all_o in_o that_o controversy_n of_o rebaptise_v the_o reconcile_a s._n cyprian_n with_o almost_o fourscore_o of_o his_o fellow_n african_a bysshop_n do_v think_v that_o every_o one_o who_o be_v baptize_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a communion_n ought_v to_o be_v baptize_v again_o when_o he_o have_v reconcile_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n as_o yet_o there_o have_v be_v no_o general_a council_n assemble_v in_o that_o behalf_n but_o the_o world_n be_v hold_v in_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o custom_n 9_o l._n 2_o c._n 9_o and_o this_o custom_n only_o be_v oppose_v to_o those_o which_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v in_o that_o novelty_n of_o rebaptisation_n because_o they_o can_v not_o apprehend_v the_o truth_n yet_o afterward_o whilst_o among_o many_o on_o both_o side_n it_o be_v speak_v of_o and_o seek_v it_o be_v not_o only_o find_v out_o but_o also_o bring_v to_o the_o authority_n and_o strength_n of_o a_o general_a council_n after_o cyprian_n passion_n indeed_o but_o yet_o before_o i_o be_v bear_v council_n a_o precedent_n plenary_a may_v be_v amend_v by_o a_o subsequent_a plenary_a in_o matter_n o●_n fact_n and_o in_o faith_n a_o general_n not_o approve_v by_o a_o general_a approve_a council_n in_o the_o same_o place_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o counsel_n by_o s._n cyprian_a and_o his_o predecessor_n make_v in_o africa_n he_o say_v that_o particular_a counsel_n must_v yield_v to_o general_a and_o that_o the_o whole_a be_v deserve_o prefer_v before_o the_o part_n or_o particular_n more_o over_o in_o the_o same_o book_n a_o little_a before_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o s._n cyprian_n word_n that_o if_o s._n cyprian_n have_v know_v of_o such_o a_o definition_n he_o will_v have_v correct_v his_o opinion_n and_o then_o show_v how_o much_o he_o do_v rely_v on_o it_o himself_o neither_o dare_v we_o affirm_v any_o such_o thing_n if_o we_o be_v not_o well_o ground_v upon_o the_o most_o uniform_a authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 4._o l._n 2._o c._n 4._o unto_o which_o undoubtedlie_o s._n cyprian_n also_o will_v have_v yield_v if_o in_o his_o time_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o question_n have_v be_v clear_v and_o declare_v sp●rit_n s._n augustine_n sp●rit_n and_o by_o a_o general_a council_n establish_v and_o of_o the_o same_o again_o he_o have_v a_o excellent_a discourse_n in_o the_o five_o book_n where_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o say_v that_o he_o please_v not_o the_o saint_n if_o he_o seek_v to_o prefer_v his_o wit_n and_o eloquence_n and_o store_n of_o learning_n before_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o all_o nation_n 17._o ●_o 5._o e._n 17._o to_o which_o doubtless_o he_o be_v present_a by_o unity_n of_o spirit_n and_o if_o i_o with_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v judge_v more_o true_o abide_v abide_v i_o do_v not_o prefer_v my_o hart_n before_o he_o neither_o be_v he_o in_o that_o he_o judge_v otherwise_o divide_v from_o the_o whole_a world_n abide_v abide_v i_o prefer_v not_o my_o opinion_n before_o he_o but_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n perman●t_fw-la ●_o cvius_fw-la uni●ersitas_fw-la ip●_n non_fw-la fuit_fw-la ●d_a in_fw-la eius_fw-la universitas_n perman●t_fw-la all_o which_o he_o be_v not_o but_o remain_v in_o it_o this_o be_v enough_o for_o my_o purpose_n and_o in_o the_o same_o principle_n of_o s._n augustine_n you_o see_v now_o that_o i_o can_v answer_v any_o objection_n that_o you_o can_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o dissension_n of_o ancient_a or_o modern_a writer_n or_o rather_o if_o you_o reflect_v on_o it_o well_o you_o will_v be_v able_a to_o answer_n it_o all_o yourself_o 77._o this_o passage_n have_v make_v i_o call_v to_o mind_v other_o speech_n of_o the_o father_n not_o far_o from_o this_o purpose_n whereof_o i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o put_v some_o down_o for_o your_o better_a meditation_n if_o you_o will_v be_v please_v peradventure_o to_o think_v more_o serious_o on_o their_o word_n than_o you_o have_v do_v hitherto_o on_o i_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v hold_v of_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o please_v the_o whole_a church_n ●3_n aug._n l._n 1._o ●nt_fw-la cres_n ●3_n the_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v commend_v that_o because_o the_o holy_a scripture_n can_v deceive_v whosoever_o fear_v to_o be_v deceive_v with_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n let_v he_o require_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o any_o ambiguity_n do_v demonstrate_v 2d_o vincent_n lirin_fw-mi con●_n haeres_fw-la c._n 2d_o it_o be_v necessary_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o wind_n of_o unconstant_a error_n that_o the_o line_n of_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a interpretation_n be_v direct_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_a sense_n and_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n likewise_o we_o must_v have_v a_o great_a care_n that_o we_o hold_v that_o which_o have_v be_v believe_v every_o where_o ever_o and_o by_o all_o 3._o c._n 3._o for_o this_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o catholic_n as_o the_o power_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o word_n or_o name_n do_v import_v which_o true_o do_v comprehend_v all_o universallie_n and_o this_o be_v so_o do_v in_o fine_a if_o we_o follow_v universality_n antiquity_n consent_n universality_n we_o follow_v if_o we_o confess_v that_o one_o faith_n to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o whole_a church_n through_o the_o world_n do_v acknowledge_v and_o antiquity_n if_o we_o do_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n leave_v those_o sense_n which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o our_o father_n and_o holy_a elder_n have_v celebrate_v and_o commend_v and_o consent_v also_o if_o we_o follow_v the_o definition_n ad_fw-la decree_n of_o all_o or_o near_o all_o the_o priest_n and_o master_n in_o antiquity_n 78._o a_o protestant_n will_v think_v i_o unreasonable_a if_o i_o shall_v demand_v and_o exact_v all_o these_o condition_n in_o every_o protestant_n proposition_n before_o i_o believe_v it_o yet_o i_o will_v believe_v none_o of_o their_o doctrine_n unless_o it_o be_v thus_o prove_v nor_o all_o their_o religion_n unless_o it_o be_v thus_o prove_v all_o which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o that_o by_o god_n grace_n i_o will_v never_o believe_v it_o we_o have_v possession_n the_o spirit_n be_v in_o our_o church_n and_o this_o father_n be_v of_o it_o and_o do_v acknowledge_v it_o of_o great_a authority_n of_o more_o infallibility_n than_o himself_o and_o his_o rule_n be_v rule_v by_o it_o but_o i_o go_v on_o in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o church_n two_o thing_n be_v constant_o and_o with_o great_a care_n to_o be_v observe_v 41_o idem_fw-la c._n 41_o to_o both_o which_o all_o they_o that_o will_v not_o become_v heretic_n must_v steed_n fast_o adhere_v the_o first_o be_v whatsoever_o be_v auncientlie_o decree_v by_o all_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o a_o general_a council_n secondlie_o if_o any_o new_a question_n do_v arise_v concern_v which_o there_o be_v no_o such_o decree_n to_o be_v find_v then_o must_v recourse_n be_v make_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n i_o say_v of_o those_o only_a who_o every_o one_o in_o their_o own_o time_n be_v find_v to_o be_v approve_v master_n continue_v still_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o communion_n and_o faith_n and_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v
by_o divine_a revelation_n that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o church_n ever_o teach_v all_o truth_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v at_o large_a and_o i_o have_v declare_v also_o which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o we_o have_v no_o divine_a revelation_n that_o he_o be_v in_o n._n n._n in_o john_n caluin_n yea_o we_o know_v he_o be_v not_o in_o he_o because_o he_o contradict_v the_o spirit_n in_o the_o church_n this_o church_n the_o father_n have_v instruction_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o community_n the_o great_a judgment_n do_v ever_o stoop_v their_o practice_n do_v so_o demonstrate_v their_o book_n for_o they_o confess_v it_o still_o and_o this_o be_v our_o practice_n also_o this_o be_v our_o resolution_n we_o confess_v it_o we_o profess_v it_o we_o rest_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o to_o this_o tribunal_n be_v you_o never_o so_o unwilling_a you_o must_v also_o come_v as_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o this_o book_n and_o here_o all_o *_o controversy_n must_v be_v determine_v we_o do_v not_o fly_v the_o scripture_n we_o have_v it_o we_o have_v the_o reverence_n of_o antiquity_n on_o our_o side_n and_o reason_n plead_v for_o we_o but_o here_o the_o cause_n be_v end_v when_o you_o do_v question_v the_o real_a presence_n justification_n by_o work_n s._n peter_n primacy_n and_o allege_v scripture_n we_o do_v likewise_o allege_v scripture_n and_o so_o pregnant_a that_o you_o can_v real_o answer_v and_o then_o along_o we_o go_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o divine_a spirit_n in_o the_o church_n where_o we_o be_v certain_a he_o be_v and_o teach_v all_o truth_n when_o you_o say_v this_o or_o that_o book_n be_v not_o scripture_n this_o be_v or_o be_v not_o receive_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v this_o or_o that_o we_o examine_v all_o and_o then_o appeal_v to_o to_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o church_n where_o we_o be_v sure_o he_o be_v suggest_v all_o whatsoever_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o teach_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v of_o man_n when_o you_o pretend_v that_o our_o doctrine_n be_v against_o reason_n against_o holy_a father_n against_o antiquity_n we_o produce_v testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o reason_n for_o our_o side_n and_o then_o submit_v the_o cause_n to_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o church_n which_o look_v on_o all_o truth_n can_v judge_v best_a what_o be_v most_o conformable_a to_o reason_n to_o the_o father_n to_o all_o antiquity_n and_o when_o you_o say_v that_o the_o counsel_n contradict_v one_o another_o that_o there_o be_v contradiction_n in_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v satisfy_v in_o these_o point_n also_o by_o the_o spirit_n in_o church_n as_o be_v the_o high_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n of_o infinite_a understanding_n and_o no_o less_o infinite_a veracitie_n so_o that_o all_o particular_a controversy_n do_v run_v into_o this_o general_a principle_n to_o be_v resolve_v and_o this_o principle_n we_o have_v in_o plain_a term_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n the_o five_o chapter_n wherein_o some_o exception_n be_v answer_v 82._o the_o objection_n which_o you_o and_o your_o fellow_n make_v be_v partly_o against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o itself_o and_o partly_o against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_a counsel_n where_o bishop_n be_v assemble_v out_o of_o all_o country_n to_o determine_v common_o by_o divine_a assistance_n what_o belong_v to_o faith_n and_o what_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o of_o this_o second_o part_n it_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n formal_o in_o itself_o whereof_o i_o have_v entreat_v hitherto_o but_o the_o whole_a in_o representation_n only_o as_o divine_v term_v it_o i_o will_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o hereafter_o and_o will_v answer_n that_o here_o which_o you_o bring_v against_o the_o first_o which_o be_v the_o matter_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n you_o be_v to_o show_v not_o that_o some_o particular_a man_n or_o some_o part_n of_o the_o church_n may_v fall_v of_o and_o leave_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_a not-erring_a church_n for_o that_o we_o see_v cleerelie_o in_o your_o master_n luther_n caluin_n and_o other_o which_o once_o be_v catholic_n and_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o by_o that_o communion_n catholic_a as_o be_v then_o part_v of_o god_n church_n and_o be_v now_o fall_v into_o schism_n and_o heresy_n but_o you_o must_v prove_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v err_v in_o faith_n or_o to_o use_v your_o own_o term_n that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v be_v in_o error_n affirm_v and_o believe_v contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v true_a in_o faith_n 83._o and_o first_o i_o observe_v that_o if_o you_o do_v understand_v your_o own_o principle_n you_o will_v despair_v of_o the_o success_n of_o your_o own_o argument_n because_o by_o those_o principle_n of_o you_o all_o that_o you_o can_v say_v may_v justly_o be_v contemn_v this_o i_o demonstrate_v for_o you_o will_v either_o prove_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o we_o defend_v it_o to_o be_v a_o error_n fundamental_a or_o to_o be_v some_o other_o error_n not_o fundamental_a the_o first_o you_o can_v pretend_v without_o contradict_v yourself_o present_o for_o you_o say_v also_o that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o fundamental_n and_o that_o we_o in_o fundamental_n do_v not_o err_v grant_v withal_o when_o you_o be_v well_o urge_v that_o we_o be_v the_o church_n and_o if_o you_o shall_v start_v back_o and_o deny_v it_o again_o you_o will_v find_v it_o under_o double_a proof_n in_o another_o place_n the_o second_o you_o can_v as_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o prove_v and_o demonstrate_v in_o your_o principle_n because_o according_a to_o they_o you_o can_v take_v no_o mean_n whereof_o you_o be_v certain_a not_o reason_n for_o all_o man_n may_v err_v in_o obscure_a matter_n nor_o father_n for_o in_o your_o principle_n all_o may_v err_v nor_o place_n of_o scripture_n for_o you_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v certain_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o place_n not_o be_v one_o of_o your_o fundamentalle_n nor_o the_o spirit_n because_o in_o not_o fundamental_n he_o assi_v not_o as_o you_o say_v and_o maintain_v in_o this_o question_n or_o if_o he_o do_v assist_v in_o this_o very_a matter_n whether_o you_o call_v it_o fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a he_o do_v assist_v the_o church_n for_o to_o the_o church_n be_v the_o promise_n make_v 84._o thus_o you_o very_o wise_o have_v over_o reach_v yourself_o and_o leave_v yourself_o no_o mean_n to_o prove_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o either_o in_o this_o controversy_n or_o in_o any_o other_o for_o fundamentallie_o you_o confess_v we_o have_v not_o err_v and_o in_o other_o thing_n by_o your_o own_o principle_n you_o be_v not_o certain_a yet_o to_o gull_v the_o people_n you_o bring_v text_n not_o fundamental_a according_a to_o your_o distinction_n and_o cry_v out_o scripture_n scripture_n the_o gospel_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o if_o you_o find_v a_o place_n in_o s._n augustine_n which_o neither_o your_o parishioner_n nor_o yourself_o do_v understand_v you_o challenge_v we_o to_o the_o father_n whereas_o in_o your_o conscience_n you_o believe_v for_o certain_a neither_o father_n nor_o scripture_n but_o only_o some_o place_n which_o you_o call_v fundamental_a neither_o do_v you_o acknowledge_v any_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n either_o from_o god_n or_o man_n to_o be_v sure_a of_o thing_n not_o fundamental_a as_o you_o term_v they_o as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o and_o the_o same_o these_o your_o protestant_n argument_n which_o follow_v will_v fain_o prove_v 85._o the_o first_o argument_n to_o this_o end_n be_v make_v against_o the_o church_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o old_a law_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o therefore_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n because_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o it_o be_v establish_v by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o govern_v by_o his_o spirit_n which_o church_n be_v not_o limit_v unto_o one_o nation_n only_o but_o over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o catholic_n and_o of_o this_o i_o have_v prove_v and_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o in_o faith_n it_o be_v infallible_a notwithstanding_o to_o maintain_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n too_o before_o the_o messiah_n come_v which_o be_v a_o other_o question_n i_o resolve_v your_o doubt_n make_v against_o it_o you_o say_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n do_v adore_v the_o brazen_a calf_n therefore_o the_o church_n all_o do_v err_v you_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o all_o do_v adore_v the_o calf_n that_o moses_n and_o the_o levite_n
even_o as_o he_o christ_n be_v just_a moreover_o you_o can_v deny_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o many_o other_o have_v have_v charity_n or_o love_n 10_o rom._n 13_o 10_o and_o love_n be_v vital_a and_o inherent_a and_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 5.5_o ibid._n v._o 9_o rom._n 5.5_o and_o he_o that_o love_v his_o neighbour_n have_v fulfil_v the_o law_n the_o charity_n of_o god_n be_v power_v forth_o in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v give_v us._n we_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n which_o have_v charity_n may_v by_o god_n grace_n avoid_v sin_n you_o say_v no_o lut._n in_o 2._o gal._n calu_fw-fr de_fw-fr lib._n be_v l._n 1._o all_o his_o action_n you_o say_v be_v sin_n the_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d 1._o io_n 3.9_o sinne._n eschew_v 1._o io._n 5.18_o ●_o habit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n commit_v not_o sin_n because_o his_o seed_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o again_o every_o one_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o but_o the_o generation_n of_o god_n preserve_v he_o and_o the_o wicked_a one_o touch_v he_o not_o 51._o liberty_n or_o power_n to_o make_v choice_n of_o good_a to_o salvation_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o to_o eschew_v that_o which_o be_v bad_a also_o to_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o better_a in_o good_a thing_n occur_v we_o acknowledge_v you_o deny_v lut._n art_n 36._o cal._n conf._n f●d_n p._n 108._o 2._o inst_z c._n 3._o liberty_n deut._n 30._o v._o 15.19_o liberty_n the_o scripture_n i_o have_v set_v before_o thou_o this_o day_n life_n and_o good_a and_o contrariwise_o death_n and_o evil_n that_o thou_o may_v love_v our_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o walk_n in_o his_o way_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n etc._n etc._n i_o have_v propose_v unto_o you_o life_n and_o death_n blessing_n and_o curse_v choose_v therefore_o life_n that_o both_o thou_o may_v live_v and_o thy_o seed_n ●7_n 1._o cor._n 7._o ●7_n and_o the_o apostle_n he_o that_o have_v determine_v in_o his_o hart_n be_v settle_v not_o have_v necessity_n but_o have_v power_n of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o have_v judge_v this_o in_o his_o hart_n to_o keep_v his_o virgin_n do_v well_o therefore_o he_o that_o join_v his_o virgin_n in_o matrimony_n do_v well_o and_o he_o that_o join_v she_o not_o do_v better_a let_v i_o add_v one_o more_o out_o of_o genesis_n 2d_o gen._n 4_o 7._o vide_fw-la s._n aug._n l._n 15._o the_o civet_n c_o 7._o ps_n 118._o v._n 112._o s._n jerom_n ●_o 8._o sept._n ibid._n 1._o cor._n 9_o 2d_o the_o lust_n thereof_o shall_v be_v under_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v have_v dominion_n over_o it_o we_o believe_v that_o good_a work_n may_v be_v do_v in_o contemplation_n of_o a_o reward_n or_o crown_v you_o say_v no._n luth._o in_o fest_n oh_o ss_z calu._n in_o antid_v sess_v 6._o c._n 16._o david_n i_o have_v incline_v my_o hart_n to_o do_v thy_o iustification_n forever_o for_o reward_n and_o the_o the_o apostle_n every_o one_o that_o strive_v for_o mastery_n refrain_v himself_o from_o all_o thing_n and_o they_o certes_o that_o they_o may_v receive_v a_o corruptible_a crown_n but_o we_o a_o incorruptible_a we_o believe_v that_o man_n have_v reward_n for_o their_o work_n give_v they_o by_o god_n justice_n you_o say_v no._n luth_n in_o 2._o gal._n caluin_n in_o 4._o rom._n 22.12_o matt._n 16.27_o reward_n and_o merit_n apoc._n 22.12_o the_o scripture_n the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o will_v he_o render_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n behold_v i_o come_v quick_o and_o my_o reward_n be_v with_o i_o to_o render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n thou_o see_v a_o few_o name_n in_o sardis_n which_o have_v not_o defile_v their_o garment_n and_o they_o shall_v walk_v with_o i_o in_o white_n 3.4_o apoc._n 3.4_o because_o they_o be_v worthy_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o they_o merit_v and_o deserve_v it_o 4.8_o 2._o tim._n 4.8_o and_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v lay_v we_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o justice_n which_o our_o lord_n will_v render_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n a_o just_a judge_n and_o not_o only_o to_o i_o but_o to_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o come_n we_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n may_v increase_v in_o justice_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o revelation_n he_o that_o be_v just_o let_v he_o be_v justify_v yet_o and_o let_v the_o holy_a be_v sanctify_v yet_o 22.11_o apoc._n 22.11_o and_o we_o believe_v that_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n only_o justify_v ja_n 2.24_o work_n justify_v but_o also_o by_o work_n do_v by_o the_o assistance_n and_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n you_o say_v by_o faith_n only_o luth._o in_o 2._o gal._n cal._n in_o antid_v sess_v 6._o c._n 9_o the_o scripture_n a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o 52._o we_o believe_v that_o upon_o s._n peter_n by_o grace_n make_v a_o rock_n the_o church_n be_v build_v you_o say_v no._n luth._o in_o 16._o matth._n caluin_n ibid._n the_o scripture_n primacy_n mat._n 16.18_o primacy_n thou_o be_v peter_n a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n in_o the_o syriac_a in_o which_o language_n our_o saviour_n speak_v the_o thing_n be_v yet_o clear_a for_o in_o both_o place_n for_o that_o we_o read_v peter_n and_o rock_n be_v the_o same_o word_n cephas_n thus_o thou_o be_v cephas_n and_o upon_o this_o cephas_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n moreover_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n and_o the_o connexion_n of_o the_o speech_n do_v convince_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v on_o peter_n and_o the_o father_n unpartial_a judge_n so_o understand_v it_o witness_v your_o own_o man_n for_o here_o i_o be_o not_o to_o allege_v antiquity_n d●naeus_n 94_o dan._n con●_n 3.16.277_o pessimè_fw-la zanc._n de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 9_o c._n 8._o col_fw-fr 94_o the_o father_n interpret_v naughtilie_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n matth._n 16._o thou_o be_v peter_n etc._n etc._n of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n zanchius_n another_o great_a protestant_n the_o father_n exposition_n upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o peter_n be_v not_o admit_v and_o luther_n the_o great_a apostle_n of_o protestancie_n here_o all_o 490._o lut._n in_o 2._o pet._n c._n 5._o fol_z 490._o either_o father_n or_o doctor_n as_o many_o as_o hitherto_o have_v interpret_v scripture_n have_v stamble_v as_o when_o that_o of_o matth._n 16._o thou_o be_v peter_n etc._n etc._n they_o interpret_v of_o the_o pope_n we_o believe_v that_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n peculiar_o be_v make_v pastor_n of_o the_o church_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o in_o assert_v art_n 25._o calu._n 4._o inst_z c._n 6._o the_o scripture_n peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n 21.18_o io._n 21.18_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n have_v power_n to_o forgive_v and_o to_o retain_v sin_n you_o say_v no._n calu._n 3_o inst_z c._n 3._o &_o 4._o c._n 19_o luther_n here_o so_o overlash_v onthe_n affirmative_a side_n that_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr clavibus_fw-la he_o avouch_v the_o key_n to_o apertaine_v to_o all_o christian_n equal_o every_o way_n father_n omnibus_fw-la modis_fw-la luther_n ghostly_a father_n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o abrog_n mi._n pr._n he_o hold_v that_o if_o the_o devil_n shall_v absolve_v it_o be_v valid_a dum_fw-la vitant_fw-la stulti_fw-la vitia_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o the_o scripture_n power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n i_o do_v not_o say_v to_o declare_v they_o forgive_v or_o hide_a and_o not_o impute_v as_o you_o mince_v it_o but_o to_o forgive_v and_o detain_v sin_n be_v give_v to_o man_n only_o and_o to_o some_o absolution_n io_n 20._o v._o 22_o absolution_n not_o to_o all_o the_o scripture_n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o who_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v we_o believe_v that_o power_n be_v give_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o to_o the_o church_n to_o release_v man_n by_o way_n of_o indulgence_n from_o temporal_a punishment_n remain_v due_a for_o sin_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o cap._n babil_n caluin_n l._n unic_n inst_z cap._n 9_o the_o scripture_n whatsoever_o thou_o peter_n shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n indulgence_n matt_n 16_o 19_o indulgence_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v in_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n 53._o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o protestant_a school_n be_v divide_v about_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o you_o follow_v caluine_n so_o do_v jewel_n perkins_n rainolds_n wittaker_n bilson_n white_n etc._n etc._n and_o howsoever_o some_o of_o your_o
&_o q._n 5._o c._n 17._o the_o scripture_n 2d_o isay_n 59_o 2d_o my_o word_n that_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o thy_o seed_n say_v our_o lord_n from_o this_o present_a and_o for_o ever_o the_o same_o place_n your_o brother_n puritan_n do_v also_o contradict_v in_o deny_v a_o perpetual_a visible_a church_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o all_o truth_n you_o say_v no_o and_n so_o do_v all_o heretic_n our_o saviour_n in_o the_o scripture_n 13_o io._n 14.16_o &_o 16._o v._o 13_o i_o will_v give_v you_o another_o paraclete_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n 55._o thus_o i_o be_o come_v in_o fine_a to_o the_o first_o again_o which_o do_v confirm_v all_o the_o rest_n chapter_n remember_v what_o i_o say_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n in_o so_o much_o that_o what_o i_o have_v here_o show_v in_o the_o last_o place_n out_o of_o scripture_n do_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n doctrine_n deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n be_v all_o true_a whether_o it_o be_v write_v down_o in_o the_o bible_n or_o be_v not_o for_o these_o place_n of_o tradition_n by_o word_n the_o word_n of_o god_n ever_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o spirit_n suggest_v and_o teach_v all_o truth_n be_v not_o limit_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o writing_n as_o in_o the_o text_n you_o see_v and_o therefore_o now_o i_o repeat_v my_o argument_n make_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n if_o the_o scripture_n do_v formal_o avouch_v our_o doctrine_n and_o deny_v you_o in_o the_o main_a point_n wherein_o we_o differ_v arg._n it_o be_v evidentlie_o unpossible_a for_o you_o or_o any_o man_n breathe_v to_o make_v it_o evident_a by_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n be_v of_o your_o religion_n not_o of_o we_o or_o that_o you_o be_v true_a we_o false_a but_o the_o scripture_n do_v avouch_v our_o doctrine_n and_o deny_v you_o in_o the_o main_a point_n wherein_o we_o differ_v as_o i_o have_v show_v therefore_o it_o be_v evident_o unpossible_a for_o you_o or_o any_o man_n breathe_v to_o make_v it_o evident_a by_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n be_v of_o your_o religion_n not_o of_o ●urs_n or_o that_o you_o be_v true_a we_o false_a 56._o now_o since_o your_o doctrine_n be_v thus_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n and_o consequent_o your_o spirit_n be_v rubde_v upon_o this_o tuchstone_n be_v find_v to_o be_v counterfeit_a it_o be_v not_o amiss_o to_o look_v about_o from_o whence_o you_o have_v your_o doctrine_n and_o whence_o your_o spirit_n come_v which_o thing_n i_o can_v find_v out_o without_o much_o ado_n and_o will_v set_v down_o here_o but_o that_o i_o have_v already_o be_v to_o long_o i_o will_v therefore_o only_o \_o show_v you_o the_o way_n to_o find_v it_o and_o so_o conclude_v look_v out_o the_o place_n where_o god_n commandment_n be_v never_o keep_v but_o esteem_v unpossible_a where_o all_o action_n be_v sin_n and_o sin_n never_o remit_v or_o wipe_v clean_o away_o where_o there_o be_v no_o indulgence_n or_o remission_n of_o any_o pain_n due_a to_o sin_n no_o work_n of_o supererogation_n acknowledge_v no_o state_n of_o perfection_n no_o merit_n of_o work_n no_o liberty_n to_o do_v well_o no_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a no_o communion_n with_o saint_n in_o heaven_n nor_o prayer_n make_v unto_o they_o where_o priestly_a function_n be_v abhor_v holy_a sacrifice_n blaspheme_v and_o the_o very_a image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n loathe_a and_o detest_a where_o there_o be_v no_o justice_n inherent_a no_o constant_a rectitude_n or_o infallibility_n of_o judgement_n no_o continual_a visibilitie_n of_o sacred_a profession_n no_o unity_n in_o religion_n but_o a_o confuse_a admittance_n of_o all_o that_o be_v against_o the_o catholic_a of_o wicklefist_n and_o hussite_n 2._o luther_n do_v confess_v it_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la pri_fw-la tom_fw-mi 7._o fol._n 228._o wittemb_n a._n 1558._o see_v luther_n life_n by_o mr_n brereley_o c●_n 1_o ●_o 2._o and_o arian_n and_o atheist_n and_o all_o people_n that_o will_v obstinate_o refuse_v confession_n of_o their_o sin_n work_n of_o piety_n and_o the_o common_a creed_n and_o make_v themselves_o their_o own_o wit_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o look_v out_o this_o place_n and_o the_o rest_n you_o will_v find_v there_o i_o have_v hear_v and_o read_v and_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o spirit_n which_o instruct_v luther_n your_o master_n come_v from_o thence_o the_o conclusion_n the_o protestant_n be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v satisfaction_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o as_o also_o by_o their_o opposition_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o true_a religion_n which_o or_o where_o else_o soever_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v the_o second_o book_n wherein_o be_v declare_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o first_o chapter_n show_v by_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o true_a christian_a church_n be_v catholic_a for_o time_n and_o place_n 1._o since_o your_o church_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v catholic_a or_o universal_a in_o regard_n of_o a_o general_a communion_n which_o the_o world_n and_o perpetual_a visibilitie_n you_o pretend_v there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o any_o such_o latitude_n of_o place_n or_o time_n and_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v catholic_a for_o doctrine_n because_o it_o hold_v the_o three_o creed_n with_o baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n and_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o one_o time_n or_o nation_n but_o such_o as_o may_v be_v in_o any_o which_o you_o call_v negative_a universality_n for_o time_n and_o place_n and_o for_o doctrine_n positive_a thou_o seem_v to_o speak_v acutelie_o say_v s._n augustine_n to_o vincentius_n a_o man_n of_o the_o rogation_n heresy_n and_o your_o master_n in_o the_o way_n of_o defend_v your_o religion_n as_o it_o seem_v when_o thou_o do_v interpret_v the_o name_n catholic_a 48_o s._n aug._n ep_v 48_o by_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o divine_a precept_n and_o all_o sacrament_n and_o not_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n etc._n etc._n but_o indeed_o the_o thing_n which_o thou_o do_v endeavour_n to_o persuade_v we_o be_v that_o only_a rogatian_n have_v remain_v who_o be_v right_o to_o be_v call_v catholic_n by_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o all_o sacrament_n and_o that_o you_o only_o be_v the_o man_n in_o who_o the_o son_n of_o man_n may_v find_v faith_n when_o he_o come_v pardon_v we_o we_o believe_v it_o not_o and_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n you_o be_v with_o we_o in_o baptism_n in_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o lord_n sacrament_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n and_o in_o the_o band_n of_o peace_n and_o final_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o be_v not_o with_o us._n as_o that_o rogatian_a so_o you_o in_o your_o interpretation_n will_v seem_v acute_a but_o unto_o such_o only_a as_o neither_o know_v scripture_n nor_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v perfect_a and_o the_o object_n of_o her_o faith_n entire_a in_o itself_o but_o in_o your_o book_n and_o belief_n it_o be_v mangle_v and_o divide_v so_o that_o part_n only_o be_v there_o allow_v as_o hereafter_o shall_v appear_v the_o question_n be_v not_o here_o about_o that_o but_o about_o the_o church_n that_o be_v about_o a_o certain_a congregation_n of_o man_n and_o about_o the_o universality_n of_o such_o a_o congregation_n not_o negative_a as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o but_o positive_a of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o because_o you_o admit_v not_o a_o positive_a universality_n that_o be_v a_o be_v of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o all_o time_n i_o will_v demonstrate_v unto_o you_o by_o scripture_n the_o universality_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o soever_o it_o be_v whether_o the_o roman_a or_o any_o other_o of_o which_o further_a point_n i_o will_v not_o dispute_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o although_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o testimony_n for_o this_o universality_n i_o will_v allege_v a_o few_o only_a and_o those_o in_o order_n out_o of_o moses_n the_o psalm_n prophet_n and_o gospel_n which_o be_v well_o look_v into_o will_v suffice_v 2._o but_o first_o lest_o you_o rhinke_v you_o be_v to_o open_v your_o eye_n to_o look_v on_o a_o church_n and_o it_o invisible_a by_o reason_n that_o in_o the_o creed_n we_o believe_v the_o church_n
have_v be_v confirm_v to_o bonifacius_n by_o phocas_n but_o this_o will_v not_o hinder_v my_o argument_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o declare_v and_o second_v a_o other_o thing_n to_o institute_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o primacy_n you_o have_v in_o the_o gospel_n 3_o ma●_n 〈…〉_o 18._o io._n 21.18_o s._n hierom._n ep_v ad_fw-la dam_n theod._n ep_v ad_fw-la renat_n presb_n sand._n visib_n mon._n l._n 7._o touch_v the_o existencie_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n see_v more_o in_o the_o protestant_a apol_n tract_n 2_o c._n ●_o sect._n 3_o the_o acknowledgement_n you_o have_v in_o antiquity_n as_o i_o will_v declare_v hereafter_o and_o the_o exercise_n before_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n be_v well_o know_v on_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n say_v our_o saviour_n who_o commend_v his_o flock_n peculiar_o to_o s._n peter_n i_o quoth_v s._n jerom_n to_o damasus_n then_o pope_n follow_v none_o foremost_a but_o christ_n do_v communicate_v with_o thy_o holiness_n that_o be_v with_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n upon_o that_o rock_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o theodoret_n a_o grecian_a speak_v of_o that_o see_v that_o holy_a seat_n have_v the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n you_o hear_v before_o what_o s._n leo_n say_v of_o it_o and_o you_o know_v how_o he_o do_v exercise_v this_o power_n only_o because_o your_o fellow_n be_v wont_a to_o object_v a_o speech_n of_o s._n cregorie_n not_o content_a to_o take_v the_o interpretation_n of_o it_o from_o his_o own_o mouth_n i_o put_v you_o hear_v in_o mind_n that_o he_o do_v exercise_v this_o power_n over_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o his_o time_n and_o this_o you_o have_v note_v by_o d._n sanders_n in_o his_o monarchy_n 7._o sand._n visib_n mon._n l._n 7._o and_o not_o answer_v yet_o he_o show_v there_o i_o say_v out_o of_o s._n gregory_n own_o writing_n how_o he_o do_v exercise_v the_o foresay_a power_n over_o the_o bysshop_n and_o church_n of_o italy_n sicily_n corsica_n sardinia_n africa_n spain_n ireland_n england_n france_n dalmatia_n greece_n corcyra_n and_o that_o the_o patriarck_n have_v confess_v subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n last_o we_o have_v the_o confession_n of_o your_o man_n here_o cite_v in_o this_o a_o gument_n for_o the_o general_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n ever_o since_o constantine_n which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o purpose_n howsoever_o the_o grecian_n might_n some_o time_n bear_v themselves_o in_o some_o occasion_n of_o which_o i_o be_o to_o speak_v in_o a_o other_o place_n 23._o a_o seven_o arg._n it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o scripture_n above_o cite_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v perpetual_a and_o can_v fail_v and_o arg._n 7_o this_o by_o scripture_n be_v mean_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n whereof_o i_o have_v give_v ample_a demonstration_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o second_o book_n which_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o peruse_v and_o mark_v now_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a church_n at_o all_o that_o have_v be_v petpetuall_a but_o this_o which_o i_o speak_v of_o therefore_o this_o individual_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o i_o have_v assume_v let_v we_o look_v upon_o the_o rest_n the_o pagan_n come_v not_o in_o question_n because_o their_o church_n be_v not_o christian_n nor_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n though_o they_o far_o exceed_v you_o in_o this_o point_n of_o perpetuity_n the_o grecian_n they_o be_v in_o our_o communion_n the_o first_o thousand_o year_n and_o since_o have_v be_v neither_o be_v grecisme_n believe_v always_o or_o ever_o the_o faith_n of_o nation_n and_o communion_n with_o you_o they_o have_v refuse_v your_o church_n and_o religion_n have_v not_o be_v perpetual_a as_o in_o the_o former_a book_n we_o have_v see_v to_o your_o grief_n another_o that_o can_v callenge_v there_o be_v not_o not_o the_o aethiopian_a nor_o the_o maronite_n nor_o any_o whatsoever_o the_o roman_a have_v ever_o be_v and_o her_o communion_n ever_o be_v universal_a therefore_o this_o great_a and_o ample_a society_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n 24._o a_o eigth_n argum._n that_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n whereunto_o come_v all_o nation_n and_o out_o of_o which_o all_o heretic_n do_v go_v but_o into_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o company_n which_o i_o have_v arg._n 8_o name_v that_o be_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o the_o company_n of_o christian_n communicate_v with_o it_o all_o nation_n hitherto_o have_v come_v and_o out_o of_o it_o all_o heretic_n have_v go_v therefore_o this_o be_v and_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o proposition_n be_v clear_a by_o the_o promise_v relate_v in_o the_o begin_n that_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o church_n and_o her_o gate_n be_v ever_o open_a day_n and_o night_n to_o receive_v they_o 5._o c._n 1._o be_v 60._o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr sym._n 6._o l._n 1._o c._n 5._o and_o as_o for_o heretic_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o they_o be_v bough_n lop_v of_o the_o great_a vine_n and_o that_o that_o heresy_n be_v a_o corruption_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o assumption_n you_o have_v at_o large_a in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o you_o deny_v not_o but_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n this_o company_n be_v the_o church_n 4._o baronius_n spondan_n auctar_n jarricius_n magdeburg_n osiander_n pappu●_n see_v prot._n apol._n tr_fw-la 2._o c._n 1._o s_o 4._o that_o nation_n from_o infidelity_n be_v convert_v to_o it_o and_o that_o heretic_n all_o go_v out_o of_o the_o same_o company_n since_o unto_o the_o same_o have_v be_v convert_v the_o german_n vandal_n polonian_n dane_n hungarian_n norwegian_n brasilian_o indian_n and_o diverse_a other_o and_o to_o your_o company_n or_o religion_n immediate_o from_o infidelity_n no_o nation_n at_o all_o out_o of_o the_o same_o great_a company_n have_v go_v all_o heretic_n since_o that_o time_n and_o among_o they_o those_o who_o in_o part_n be_v your_o predecessor_n iconoclastes_n berengarian_n waldense_n albigense_n lollarde_n hussite_n 25._o bear_v with_o i_o if_o i_o repeat_v the_o same_o again_o arg._n 9_o for_o a_o nienth_fw-mi argument_n the_o roman_a see_v and_o other_o congregation_n in_o that_o communion_n be_v the_o church_n or_o the_o catholic_a congregation_n in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n paul_n and_o the_o same_o congregation_n 300._o year_n after_o be_v still_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o have_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o you_o know_v by_o the_o general_n council_n of_o nice_a into_o it_o come_v schythians_n iberian_o armenian_n hun_n and_o other_o out_o go_v the_o marcionite_n novatians_n manichee_n arianes_n betwixt_o the_o four_o and_o five_o age_n be_v the_o council_n of_o calcedom_n and_o in_o that_o time_n likewise_o the_o foresay_a communion_n be_v the_o church_n catholic_a and_o their_o communion_n be_v with_o the_o christian_n world_n as_o by_o that_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o epistle_n of_o leo_n the_o great_a who_o be_v precedent_n of_o it_o all_o man_n know_v into_o this_o communion_n come_v scot_n french_a and_o other_o nation_n out_o go_v pelagian_n and_o nestorian_n after_o who_o communion_n in_o the_o aethiopian_n you_o seem_v to_o thirst_v in_o the_o next_o age_n follow_v which_o be_v the_o sixth_o and_o seven_o be_v the_o general_n assembly_n at_o constantinople_n one_o in_o the_o time_n of_o vigilius_n be_v the_o fifte_a general_n council_n the_o other_o in_o the_o time_n of_o agatho_n which_o you_o have_v in_o the_o tone_n of_o council_n with_o most_o ample_a subscription_n of_o the_o bysshop_n which_o be_v in_o they_o and_o by_o these_o general_n council_n which_o do_v also_o receive_v the_o former_a it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o those_o time_n also_o the_o company_n of_o christian_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o pope_n and_o those_o council_n be_v with_o the_o world_n of_o christian_n into_o it_o come_v the_o picte_n goth_n barbarian_n and_o our_o country_n out_o be_v cast_v the_o tritheite_n monothelite_n and_o other_o such_o excrement_n after_o those_o council_n follow_v other_o one_o at_o nice_a in_o the_o time_n of_o adrian_n the_o first_o another_o at_o constantinople_n adrian_n the_o second_o be_v then_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o which_o council_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v be_v then_o also_o general_a and_o this_o company_n the_o church_n of_o god_n they_o do_v also_o receive_v the_o former_a council_n and_o no_o communion_n be_v general_n in_o christendom_n or_o continue_v by_o universal_a succession_n but_o only_o this_o into_o this_o company_n come_v the_o frisian_n hassite_n russian_n out_o
together_o from_o all_o place_n to_o discuss_v and_o to_o determine_v be_v he_o move_v with_o antiquity_n the_o reverence_n of_o elder_a time_n be_v all_o with_o we_o here_o be_v gregory_n and_o chrysostons_n and_o augustine_n and_o basils_n and_o ephrem_n and_o cyrills_n and_o cyprian_n and_o justines_n and_o other_o innumerable_a be_v he_o move_v by_o god_n word_n it_o be_v flat_o and_o unansweareable_o on_o our_o side_n atheist_n child_n can_v answer_v they_o err_v so_o gross_o against_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n the_o jew_n be_v force_v to_o see_v with_o their_o own_o eye_n the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o his_o kingdom_n fullfil_v in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o this_o church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a yeaven_n that_o which_o be_v now_o and_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v be_v so_o clear_a that_o deny_v of_o it_o all_o history_n all_o book_n all_o monument_n all_o memory_n must_v be_v deny_v and_o nothing_o be_v confess_v for_o true_a which_o ever_o yet_o have_v be_v on_o earth_n deny_v of_o it_o you_o may_v also_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v ever_o jewish_a nation_n or_o roman_a emperor_n or_o heathen_a idol_n you_o may_v as_o well_o deny_v that_o rome_n constantinople_n london_n be_v or_o ever_o be_v the_o sixth_o chapter_n what_o mean_v by_o a_o catholic_a 52._o before_o i_o go_v on_o to_o your_o objection_n because_o the_o place_n be_v very_a fit_n and_o the_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v observe_v and_o bear_v in_o mind_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o what_o i_o mean_v by_o a_o catholic_a which_o question_n be_v here_o answer_v without_o difficulty_n you_o have_v see_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o congregation_n of_o christian_n in_o communion_n at_o all_o time_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n by_o a_o catholic_a man_n i_o mean_v one_o who_o believe_v the_o creed_n of_o this_o church_n one_o of_o this_o comunion_n and_o every_o one_o which_o do_v heretofore_o embrace_v this_o communion_n be_v a_o catholic_a so_o long_o as_o he_o do_v embrace_v it_o and_o die_v a_o catholic_a if_o he_o die_v in_o it_o in_o the_o communion_n with_o this_o church_n be_v include_v a_o union_n with_o it_o which_o union_n be_v found_v in_o a_o conformity_n or_o uniformity_n of_o faith_n and_o judgement_n in_o divine_a matter_n and_o this_o be_v in_o all_o those_o who_o do_v resolve_v their_o belief_n into_o the_o proposition_n or_o judgement_n of_o this_o church_n for_o he_o who_o submit_v his_o judgement_n whole_o to_o the_o church_n and_o believe_v as_o she_o tell_v he_o ready_a to_o believe_v more_o if_o she_o declare_v herself_o more_o full_o and_o to_o condemn_v all_o doctrine_n which_o she_o condemn_v be_v undivided_a from_o the_o church_n in_o judgement_n and_o therefore_o uniform_a 53._o hence_o it_o come_v also_o that_o not_o only_o those_o who_o live_v at_o one_o time_n be_v of_o our_o communion_n but_o such_o also_o as_o live_v in_o diverse_a age_n because_o the_o follow_a age_n do_v receive_v the_o doctrine_n and_o general_a decree_n of_o the_o precedent_n believe_v all_o which_o be_v then_o by_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o condemn_v such_o opinion_n as_o they_o condemn_v by_o this_o mean_n we_o do_v also_o communicate_v with_o they_o all_o as_o perfect_o in_o the_o disposition_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o readiness_n of_o our_o understanding_n as_o if_o we_o have_v live_v with_o they_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o admit_v all_o the_o council_n that_o be_v general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n in_o their_o time_n and_o be_v sufficient_o move_v thereunto_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o then_o receive_v they_o for_o we_o resolve_v our_o judgement_n into_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o be_v our_o rule_n under_o god_n who_o be_v the_o prime_a rule_n and_o high_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n you_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o make_v a_o other_o use_n of_o some_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n but_o you_o can_v for_o you_o make_v your_o own_o choice_n of_o that_o which_o you_o believe_v and_o do_v not_o submit_v your_o judgement_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n church_n we_o acknowledge_v divine_a assistance_n in_o church-proposition_n as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o and_o this_o do_v every_o catholic_a which_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o religion_n though_o we_o live_v at_o several_a time_n out_o of_o this_o come_v the_o catholic_a union_n or_o unity_n which_o be_v most_o ample_a reach_v into_o all_o nation_n and_o through_o all_o time_n which_o kind_n of_o unity_n depend_v on_o the_o church_n mouth_n as_o on_o a_o subordinate_a cause_n and_o rule_v but_o principal_o on_o the_o all-teaching_a spiritte_v direct_v to_o reveal_v verity_n as_o on_o a_o infinite_a and_o immovable_a principle_n as_o hereafter_o i_o will_v show_v be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n ask_v any_o man_n of_o our_o religion_n on_o who_o judgement_n he_o rely_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o he_o will_v answer_v that_o he_o rely_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o you_o ask_v further_o on_o who_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o this_o age_n have_v dependence_n for_o exterior_a proposition_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o whole_a age_n resolve_v itself_o into_o the_o precedent_a age_n and_o that_o into_o the_o precedent_n and_o so_o upwardes_o to_o the_o first_o which_o age_n do_v resolve_v itself_o into_o the_o apostle_n proposition_n and_o they_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o proposition_n of_o our_o saviour_n who_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o this_o purpose_n and_o he_o cor_n saviour_n be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n do_v cleerlie_o behold_v all_o truth_n with_o a_o infinite_a understanding_n and_o there_o stay_v the_o resolution_n have_v make_v a_o full_a compass_n and_o return_v thither_o where_o this_o verity_n first_o be_v for_o all_o truth_n be_v first_o in_o the_o divine_a understanding_n and_o thence_o reveal_v many_o way_n as_o it_o have_v please_v that_o original_a goodness_n the_o eternal_a father_n as_o by_o prophet_n in_o old_a time_n and_o after_o by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n who_o do_v instruct_v his_o church_n and_o bequeath_v a_o everlasting_a assistance_n to_o bear_v in_o mind_n and_o to_o deliver_v true_o this_o lesson_n to_o future_a age_n hence_o it_o come_v that_o this_o instruction_n or_o word_n which_o he_o put_v into_o her_o mouth_n have_v not_o yet_o get_v out_o of_o it_o nor_o will_v to_o the_o world_n end_n 54_o i_o have_v make_v a_o full_a point_n and_o be_v go_v on_o to_o the_o next_o chapter_n but_o i_o remember_v with_o who_o i_o be_o now_o again_o deal_v and_o that_o i_o be_o to_o repeat_v the_o same_o thing_n over_o more_o than_o once_o have_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n also_o content_v myself_o with_o very_a few_o thing_n among_o infinite_a which_o may_v be_v say_v for_o our_o cause_n my_o chief_a intention_n therefore_o in_o this_o second_o book_n be_v only_o to_o declare_v which_o company_n of_o people_n in_o all_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n catholic_a or_o the_o church_n answer_v to_o god_n eternal_a decree_n declare_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v that_o company_n which_o be_v and_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n this_o company_n of_o believer_n be_v the_o church_n describe_v in_o god_n word_n and_o no_o other_o company_n distinct_a from_o this_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v be_v the_o church_n there_o describe_v in_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o have_v take_v such_o ground_n as_o be_v undeniable_a as_o the_o know_a communion_n of_o nation_n the_o like_o be_v no_o where_o find_v the_o testimony_n of_o world_n of_o people_n the_o confession_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a adversary_n that_o we_o have_v or_o ever_o have_v since_o luther_n come_v the_o evidence_n of_o general_a council_n and_o the_o know_a opposition_n of_o all_o confess_a heretic_n in_o all_o time_n to_o this_o church_n and_o to_o no_o other_o these_o ground_n or_o argument_n i_o take_v so_o far_o only_o as_o they_o be_v manifest_o undeniable_a and_o no_o further_o and_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o your_o own_o fellow_n and_o your_o master_n do_v yield_v unto_o and_o though_o most_o unwillinglie_o have_v confess_v in_o their_o book_n that_o be_v i_o take_v they_o to_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v and_o have_v be_v ever_o the_o church_n describe_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o that_o no_o other_o answerable_a to_o that_o description_n be_v any_o where_o else_o to_o be_v find_v when_o you_o answer_v this_o book_n i_o will_v have_v no_o other_o thing_n answer_v in_o this_o place_n but_o this_o keep_v the_o question_n all_o
quod_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipsi_fw-la credebant_fw-la alios_fw-la autem_fw-la timore_fw-la cessissè_fw-la &_o simulatè_fw-la consensisse_fw-la aug._n ep._n 48._o see_v baronius_n as_o the_o year_n 359._o about_o the_o council_n of_o ariminium_n which_o approve_v the_o nicene_n faith_n and_o condemn_v vrsatius_n valens_n etc._n etc._n afterwards_o happen_v that_o which_o s._n jerom_o speak_v of_o when_o the_o council_n be_v neither_o f●_n nor_o approve_a and_o all_o catholic_n in_o the_o world_n admit_v that_o such_o a_o council_n may_v 〈◊〉_d of_o ariminium_n never_o approve_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a nor_o ever_o acknowledge_v for_o lawful_a by_o the_o church_n and_o by_o yourselves_o also_o reject_v i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o fear_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v by_o that_o act_n be_v all_o deceive_v and_o err_v in_o faith_n for_o the_o church_n have_v always_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o preserve_v she_o from_o error_n in_o faith_n by_o covenant_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o promise_v of_o god_n the_o son_n as_o in_o the_o next_o book_n you_o shall_v hear_v at_o large_a neither_o want_v there_o at_o any_o time_n learned_a man_n who_o know_v that_o a_o council_n want_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v not_o ecumenical_a proper_o nor_o a_o infallible_a rule_n of_o faith_n 58._o if_o you_o plead_v against_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o our_o church_n with_o this_o objection_n it_o be_v weak_a for_o the_o arian_n ever_o find_v opponent_n and_o those_o visible_a such_o as_o at_o last_o win_v the_o field_n if_o you_o plead_v with_o it_o against_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v also_o weak_a and_o impertinent_a it_o be_v impertinent_a as_o it_o come_v from_o you_o because_o those_o arian_n be_v not_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o their_o number_n make_v nothing_o for_o the_o universality_n of_o your_o cause_n and_o it_o be_v also_o weak_a because_o their_o communion_n be_v never_o with_o all_o nation_n nor_o do_v ever_o equal_a the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v evident_a because_o the_o catholic_a communion_n be_v elder_a by_o three_o hundred_o year_n and_o be_v in_o that_o time_n spread_v over_o all_o christendom_n and_o have_v continue_v after_o arianisme_n be_v go_v these_o many_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o more_o nation_n have_v be_v since_o convert_v to_o it_o and_o be_v daily_a and_o so_o will_v be_v till_o she_o have_v be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o they_o all_o if_o therefore_o you_o will_v measure_v both_o take_v each_o communion_n in_o her_o great_a latitude_n of_o time_n and_o place_n or_o nation_n and_o you_o will_v present_o see_v arianisme_n to_o be_v too_o narrow_a and_o too_o short_a as_o not_o have_v possess_v so_o many_o nation_n nor_o dure_v so_o long_o a_o tyme._n much_o less_o will_v you_o find_v that_o begin_n the_o same_o time_n it_o run_v side_n by_o side_n in_o a_o equal_a or_o a_o full_a stream_n through_o all_o age_n to_o this_o day_n and_o be_v so_o to_o continue_v if_o you_o intend_v this_o i_o shall_v suspect_v your_o brain_n 59_o touch_v the_o comparison_n of_o it_o to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o church_n at_o lest_o which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n you_o think_v it_o so_o fill_v all_o place_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o catholic_n have_v no_o room_n this_o error_n be_v of_o ignorance_n you_o may_v amend_v it_o if_o you_o inquire_v of_o some_o who_o do_v live_v then_o if_o i_o shall_v bring_v many_o testimony_n you_o will_v say_v i_o be_v tedious_a in_o matter_n of_o history_n and_o therefore_o will_v content_v myself_o and_o you_o also_o if_o you_o be_v reasonable_a with_o one_o from_o many_o author_n s._n athanasius_n a_o man_n beyond_o exception_n together_o with_o diverse_a bysshope_n of_o egypt_n thebais_n and_o libya_n write_v to_o jovian_a the_o emperor_n of_o the_o nicene_n faith_n thus_o know_v certain_o 3._o ap_fw-mi theodoret_n l._n 4._o c._n 3._o most_o holy_a emperor_n that_o this_o same_o faith_n have_v be_v publish_v from_o all_o memory_n of_o age_n this_o the_o holy_a father_n assemble_v at_o nice_n have_v confirm_v to_o this_o have_v assent_v all_o church_n every_o where_o as_o of_o spain_n of_o brittany_n of_o france_n of_o all_o italy_n of_o dalmatia_n of_o mysia_n of_o macedonia_n and_o all_o greece_n and_o all_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n sardinia_n cyprus_n crete_n pamphilia_n lycia_n isauria_n and_o the_o church_n of_o egypt_n lybia_n pontus_n cappadocia_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o border_a country_n and_o final_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n some_o few_o except_v which_o do_v favour_v the_o arian_n sect_n for_o we_o do_v certain_o know_v the_o sentence_n of_o they_o all_o and_o have_v receive_v letter_n from_o they_o and_o do_v know_v certain_o most_o holy_a emperor_n that_o although_o a_o few_o do_v contradict_v this_o faith_n the_o whole_a world_n can_v suffer_v prejudice_n thereby_o 60._o six_o you_o oppose_v unto_o we_o want_v of_o unity_n i_o answer_v that_o all_o catholic_n do_v submit_v their_o understanding_n to_o the_o iugment_v of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o general_a decree_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o master_n ready_a to_o believe_v whatsoever_o they_o general_o in_o counsel_n do_v define_v and_o to_o reject_v whatsoever_o they_o condemn_v and_o by_o these_o mean_n be_v unite_v perfect_o unto_o those_o council_n and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o faith_n and_o judgement_n about_o religion_n each_o man_n in_o the_o church_n have_v his_o understanding_n undevided_a in_o belief_n from_o the_o church_n and_o so_o be_v one_o with_o it_o unity_n consist_v in_o indivision_n as_o you_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o philosopher_n long_o ago_o our_o council_n likewise_o be_v one_o in_o doctrine_n as_o the_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v though_o they_o be_v not_o scripture_n but_o declaration_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v they_o be_v undivided_a there_o be_v among_o they_o all_fw-mi no_o opposition_n or_o dissent_n in_o decree_n and_o definition_n and_o the_o late_a receive_n what_o have_v be_v former_o define_v whereof_o hereafter_o i_o will_v discourse_v a_o part_n because_o as_o julian_n porphyry_n and_o other_o think_v they_o see_v contradiction_n in_o the_o scripture_n so_o you_o have_v imagine_v the_o like_a of_o council_n though_o nothing_o so_o many_o nor_o have_v that_o show_n as_o those_o have_v which_o by_o the_o foresay_a infidel_n be_v object_v and_o if_o you_o know_v not_o so_o much_o you_o be_v not_o of_o that_o read_v your_o friend_n have_v take_v you_o to_o be_v to_o your_o argument_n i_o say_v therefore_o that_o this_o company_n have_v unity_n in_o belief_n no_o man_n at_o all_o in_o the_o company_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o rest_n in_o belief_n howsoever_o about_o thing_n undefinied_a and_o undetermine_v by_o the_o church_n in_o their_o time_n there_o may_v be_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o may_v be_v now_o in_o the_o like_a as_o he_o know_v that_o have_v be_v a_o week_n in_o the_o school_n of_o devinitie_n the_o same_o company_n have_v originallie_o likewise_o unity_n in_o religion_n and_o faith_n each_o understanding_n in_o the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n be_v submit_v to_o the_o same_o judge_n of_o controversy_n that_o be_v to_o god_n spiritte_v in_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o acknowledge_v this_o one_o spiritte_v and_o this_o one_o church_n and_o this_o one_o spiritte_v in_o this_o one_o church_n judge_v defininge_a determine_a rule_v all_o which_o common_a union_n and_o consent_n in_o one_o make_v their_o communion_n so_o general_a so_o firm_a and_o so_o conspicuous_a as_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o see_v with_o your_o eye_n against_o your_o will_n 61._o a_o seven_o argument_n be_v make_v against_o succession_n and_o it_o be_v object_v that_o we_o have_v no_o succession_n of_o catholic_n or_o of_o such_o as_o we_o be_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o church_n be_v that_o who_o communion_n be_v with_o all_o nation_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o a_o catholic_a be_v a_o man_n who_o do_v resolve_v his_o faith_n into_o this_o church_n and_o into_o the_o spiritte_v which_o do_v assist_v and_o teach_v it_o such_o be_v all_o who_o do_v receive_v the_o general_n council_n before_o speak_v of_o and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n present_a to_o the_o time_n wherein_o they_o live_v which_o be_v infinite_a and_o such_o will_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n if_o you_o will_v have_v some_o assign_v more_o particular_o that_o you_o may_v dispute_v against_o they_o i_o name_v whole_a assembly_n of_o pastor_n in_o general_n council_n i_o name_v the_o general_n counsel_n mention_v heretofore_o in_o they_o be_v our_o succession_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o they_o be_v conspicuous_a and_o world_n of_o people_n do_v communicate_v with_o
the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n why_o be_v it_o promise_v unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n why_o all_o this_o if_o exterior_a proposition_n be_v not_o necessary_a for_o god_n people_n and_o why_o rather_o do_v not_o every_o man_n bid_v adve_o to_o pastor_n apostle_n bible_n and_o all_o exterior_a mean_n and_o expect_v to_o be_v illuminate_v and_o instruct_v inwardlie_a and_o private_o about_o heaven_n and_o divine_a thing_n thus_o every_o man_n may_v be_v master_n in_o religion_n judge_v in_o controversy_n and_o a_o church_n unto_o himself_o 10._o i_o will_v not_o repeat_v what_o you_o say_v about_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n for_o that_o i_o have_v say_v already_o and_o have_v be_v object_v unto_o you_o oft_o be_v more_o than_o all_o your_o fellow_n can_v ever_o answer_n yet_o as_o that_o without_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n spiritte_v in_o the_o church_n man_n can_v be_v certain_a which_o be_v god_n word_n and_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o therefore_o you_o must_v yield_v at_o last_o that_o the_o church_n be_v assist_v in_o propose_v divine_a thing_n by_o the_o spiritte_v of_o allmightie_a god_n 11._o 1._o c._n 1._o a_o four_o argument_n i_o make_v out_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o perpetuity_n make_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o relate_v in_o the_o former_a book_n heresy_n arg._n 4_o destroy_v faith_n if_o therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v fall_v into_o heresy_n it_o be_v fall_v also_o from_o the_o faith_n it_o be_v no_o more_o the_o church_n as_o that_o be_v no_o more_o a_o man_n which_o have_v not_o a_o soul_n since_o therefore_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n himself_o that_o the_o church_n can_v fail_v it_o be_v certain_a also_o that_o be_v can_v fall_v from_o faith_n and_o therefore_o that_o god_n providence_n do_v perpetuallie_o assist_v it_o to_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o faith_n you_o answer_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v fall_v from_o charity_n and_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o from_o faith_n also_o this_o will_v not_o follow_v in_o term_n because_o love_n do_v suppose_v faith_n and_o therefore_o if_o god_n have_v not_o otherwise_o ordain_v may_v be_v go_v and_o leave_v it_o behind_o as_o it_o do_v oft_o in_o particular_a man_n and_o peradventure_o yourself_o do_v not_o love_v every_o one_o you_o know_v or_o if_o you_o do_v every_o body_n do_v not_o so_o wherefore_o love_n and_o knowledge_n may_v be_v part_v but_o omit_v this_o i_o reply_v that_o your_o affirmation_n be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 31.33_o jerem._n 31.33_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o covenant_n which_o i_o will_v make_v with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n say_v our_o lord_n speak_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o will_v give_v my_o law_n in_o their_o bowel_n and_o in_o their_o hart_n i_o will_v write_v it_o 37.26_o ezech._n 37.26_o and_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n i_o will_v give_v my_o sanctification_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o my_o tabernacle_n shall_v be_v in_o they_o etc._n etc._n i_o will_v despouse_v thou_o to_o i_o for_o ever_o and_o i_o will_v despouse_v thou_o to_o i_o in_o justice_n and_o judgement_n 2.19.20_o osee_n 2.19.20_o and_o in_o mercy_n and_o commiseration_n and_o i_o will_v despowse_n thou_o to_o i_o in_o faith_n and_o thou_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n by_o this_o you_o have_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v never_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n howsoever_o some_o particular_a member_n of_o it_o may_v as_o some_o part_n of_o a_o man_n body_n many_o be_v without_o sense_n though_o the_o whole_a can_v never_o be_v without_o it_o and_o hence_o i_o confirm_v further_o the_o infallibility_n before_o mention_v for_o holiness_n do_v include_v freedom_n from_o error_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n but_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v holy_a always_o as_o here_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o in_o the_o creed_n you_o profess_v to_o believe_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v always_o free_a from_o error_n 12._o the_o five_o way_n to_o prove_v the_o say_a assistance_n be_v the_o continual_a presence_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o thus_o the_o discourse_n be_v make_v if_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n have_v the_o assistance_n of_o our_o arg._n 5_o saviour_n to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o minister_a of_o the_o sacrament_n continual_o till_o the_o world_n end_n then_o have_v the_o church_n divine_a assistance_n since_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n be_v the_o church_n and_o our_o saviour_n god_n but_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n have_v this_o assistance_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v prove_v and_o manifest_v where_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o disciple_n say_v 18.19.20_o matth._n 28_o 18.19.20_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n go_v therefore_o teach_v you_o all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n you_o know_v that_o a_o coexistence_n of_o two_o thing_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n include_v the_o existence_n of_o each_o of_o they_o all_o that_o tyme._n i_o be_v not_o with_o you_o all_o the_o year_n because_o i_o come_v away_o before_o it_o be_v half_o do_v since_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o existence_n here_o on_o earth_n all_o the_o day_n till_o the_o world_n end_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v though_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o go_v many_o hundred_o year_n ago_o it_o follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n speak_v also_o in_o they_o to_o their_o successor_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n whilst_o the_o world_n do_v endure_v and_o by_o this_o mean_v i_o have_v what_o i_o desire_v in_o this_o place_n that_o i_o need_v look_v no_o further_o first_o the_o assistance_n in_o these_o word_n i_o be_o with_o you_o before_o which_o our_o bless_a saviour_n not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o difficulty_n which_o you_o will_v make_v in_o this_o matter_n put_v a_o ecce_fw-la behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o i_o have_v secondlie_o the_o party_n who_o he_o do_v assist_v to_o wit_n the_o apostle_n which_o be_v the_o church_n and_o in_o they_o their_o successor_n whilst_o the_o world_n endure_v that_o be_v the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n in_o these_o word_n i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o the_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n i_o have_v thirdlie_o the_o object_n of_o the_o assistance_n that_o be_v to_o what_o kind_n of_o act_n and_o how_o far_o it_o do_v extend_v teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o &c._n &c._n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o fourthlie_o i_o have_v here_o continual_a assistance_n to_o visible_a act_n for_o such_o be_v preach_v and_o baptise_v and_o these_o be_v visible_a to_o all_o nation_n since_o all_o nation_n be_v to_o hear_v these_o thing_n and_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o since_o all_o nation_n do_v not_o hear_v and_o receive_v baptism_n at_o one_o time_n as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n but_o some_o one_o time_n some_o another_o since_o also_o the_o assistance_n to_o these_o act_n be_v perpetual_a and_o therefore_o the_o act_n themselves_o perpetuallie_o find_v in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v manifest_a even_o by_o this_o promise_n without_o go_v further_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o perpetual_a visible_a church_n fiftlie_o that_o our_o saviour_n can_v thus_o assist_v howsoever_o he_o do_v bring_v it_o about_o i_o have_v in_o these_o word_n all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n so_o that_o if_o we_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n no_o further_a doubt_n can_v be_v make_v of_o this_o assistance_n 13._o out_o of_o the_o former_a come_v another_o which_o be_v ground_v in_o the_o obligation_n christian_n have_v to_o hear_v their_o pastor_n and_o to_o believe_v their_o doctrine_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o sixth_o which_o i_o will_v make_v thus_o if_o all_o the_o people_n in_o the_o world_n be_v arg._n 6_o oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n to_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n do_v teach_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o goodness_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n thus_o oblige_v they_o to_o have_v a_o care_n that_o it_o be_v right_a and_o true_a otherwise_o he_o will_v oblige_v they_o to_o err_v and_o live_v amiss_o which_o be_v against_o the_o goodness_n and_o therefore_o against_o the_o nature_n of_o
allmightie_a god_n but_o it_o be_v true_a that_o all_o the_o people_n in_o the_o world_n be_v thus_o oblige_v as_o i_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o saint_n mark_v go_v into_o the_o world_n preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n 15.16_o mar._n 16._o v._n 15.16_o he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v condemn_v out_o of_o this_o argument_n follow_v yet_o further_o that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o any_o thing_n of_o faith_n whether_o it_o be_v fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a incurable_a or_o curable_a great_a or_o little_a for_o the_o people_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o the_o church_n do_v teach_v and_o thus_o god_n do_v warrant_n in_o the_o place_n here_o allege_v and_o therefore_o it_o appertain_v unto_o his_o providence_n to_o assist_v and_o protect_v the_o church_n so_o that_o it_o never_o teach_v error_n in_o steed_n of_o god_n word_n 14._o the_o seven_o argument_n i_o make_v out_o of_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o christian_n before_o luther_n touch_v the_o foresay_a obligation_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o the_o divine_a spirit_n in_o it_o and_o here_o i_o except_o only_o such_o as_o yourself_o shall_v confess_v to_o have_v be_v heretic_n and_o proceed_v thus_o general_n counsel_n do_v always_o arg._n 7_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o that_o it_o have_v divine_a assistance_n and_o therefore_o do_v accurse_v all_o those_o who_o believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o church_n this_o you_o know_v by_o their_o act_n and_o canon_n the_o people_n in_o communion_n with_o these_o counsel_n do_v believe_v the_o same_o which_o the_o counsel_n do_v and_o receive_v that_o which_o they_o define_v the_o father_n saint_n augustine_n saint_n hierome_n and_o the_o rest_n do_v the_o same_o and_o the_o same_o do_v all_o the_o predestinate_a who_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n take_v their_o instruction_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n and_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n do_v which_o be_v further_o manifest_v because_o those_o be_v damn_v who_o believe_v not_o the_o church_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v in_o the_o former_a argument_n out_o of_o saviour_n word_n since_o therefore_o the_o predestinate_a be_v save_v it_o remain_v undeniable_a that_o they_o do_v believe_v the_o church_n 15._o and_o here_o because_o you_o some_o time_n when_o you_o have_v drink_v to_o much_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o self_n love_n do_v think_v that_o you_o entertain_v the_o holy_a ghost_n better_o than_o any_o of_o our_o religion_n have_v do_v especial_o since_o you_o last_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o read_v your_o name_n there_o in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n i_o oppose_v spiritte_v unto_o spiritte_v i_o oppose_v unto_o you_o the_o know_v saint_n of_o our_o religion_n both_o late_a and_o ancient_a and_o object_n unto_o you_o the_o spiritte_v which_o be_v in_o they_o you_o have_v there_o saint_n thomas_n of_o aquine_n saint_n bonaventure_n saint_n francis_n saint_n dominicke_n saint_n charles_n boromeus_n saint_n xaverius_n and_o other_o who_o sanctity_n god_n by_o miraculous_a work_n and_o sign_n have_v diwlge_v among_o the_o ancient_a you_o have_v the_o holy_a father_n and_o martyr_n it_o be_v long_o to_o repeat_v their_o name_n here_o you_o have_v the_o martyrologe_n of_o baronius_n there_o be_v thousand_o of_o they_o and_o the_o place_n where_o they_o live_v consult_v his_o note_n thereunto_o if_o you_o doubt_v of_o any_o and_o now_o i_o argue_v thus_o all_o true_a christian_n in_o all_o age_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n do_v ever_o rest_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n as_o infallible_a believe_v what_o be_v in_o the_o church_n before_o they_o universallie_o believe_v and_o condemn_v for_o heretic_n all_o those_o which_o before_o be_v universallie_o condemn_v for_o such_o and_o this_o common_a principle_n descend_v through_o all_o age_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v universallie_o teach_v by_o the_o pastor_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v receive_v universallie_o by_o the_o people_n and_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o general_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o of_o she_o spiritte_v this_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o consider_v well_o and_o mark_v again_o that_o the_o communion_n of_o god_n elect_v be_v in_o this_o multitude_n which_o be_v further_o manifest_v first_o because_o this_o only_a be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o they_o be_v all_o of_o the_o true_a church_n secondlie_o by_o those_o infinite_a miracle_n whereby_o god_n have_v as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o seal_n confirm_v their_o course_n of_o life_n and_o bless_a end_n and_o thirdlie_o because_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o holy_a father_n who_o sanctity_n you_o acknowledge_v and_o of_o infinite_a martyr_n put_v to_o death_n for_o profession_n of_o christianity_n have_v be_v open_o with_o and_o in_o this_o church_n 16._o i_o prove_v the_o same_o assistance_n eightlie_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n paul_n apostle_n and_o master_n of_o the_o gentile_n a_o rule_n you_o know_v must_v arg._n 8_o be_v right_a and_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n free_a from_o error_n this_o you_o be_v ready_a to_o admit_v and_o to_o interpret_v of_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o grant_v be_v right_a but_o there_o be_v difficulty_n which_o it_o be_v which_o be_v all_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o diverse_a place_n as_o all_o know_v by_o the_o controversy_n now_o adays_o we_o look_v therefore_o for_o a_o live_a rule_n or_o judge_v and_o certain_a proponent_n of_o god_n word_n and_o meaning_n such_o a_o rule_n the_o apostle_n direct_v we_o unto_o ā_o exterior_a visible_a perpetual_a rule_n to_o be_v follow_v by_o christian_a people_n and_o this_o if_o it_o be_v propose_v by_o god_n to_o be_v follow_v be_v infallible_a by_o his_o protection_n and_o assistance_n will_v you_o hear_v the_o apostle_n word_n he_o christ_n give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o other_o some_o evangelist_n and_o other_o some_o pastor_n 12.13.14_o ephes_n 4.11_o 12.13.14_o and_o doctor_n to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o the_o worck_n of_o ministry_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n until_o we_o meet_v all_o into_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n into_o a_o perfect_a man_n into_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullnes_n of_o christ_n that_o now_o we_o be_v not_o child_n waver_v and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n in_o the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n to_o the_o circumuention_n of_o error_n mark_v in_o this_o chapter_n of_o s._n paul_n how_o many_o thing_n be_v define_v against_o you_o and_o your_o fellow_n first_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o he_o say_v god_n give_v some_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n until_o we_o all_o meet_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n secondlie_o the_o perpetual_a visibilitie_n of_o it_o in_o that_o these_o pastor_n be_v build_v all_o the_o time_n and_o that_o they_o be_v apostle_n pastor_n doctor_n who_o office_n be_v visible_a and_o do_v manifest_v their_o person_n to_o the_o flock_n thirdlie_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v explicate_v by_o the_o end_n of_o the_o foresay_a perpetual_a ministry_n which_o be_v that_o we_o be_v not_o waver_v among_o those_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o you_o i_o hope_v include_v the_o predestinate_a who_o therefore_o you_o see_v depend_v upon_o exterior_a certain_a common_a and_o in_o a_o word_n catholic_a proposition_n of_o the_o faith_n a_o little_a before_o you_o have_v the_o unity_n of_o this_o body_n and_o of_o the_o spiritte_v of_o it_o and_o after_o follow_v the_o variety_n of_o function_n in_o this_o one_o visible_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n include_v the_o elect_a as_o i_o have_v note_v before_o the_o word_n be_v do_v the_o truth_n in_o charity_n let_v we_o in_o all_o thing_n grow_v in_o he_o which_o be_v the_o head_n christ_n 15.16_o 〈◊〉_d 15.16_o of_o who_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v compact_v and_o knit_v together_o by_o all_o juncture_n of_o subministration_n according_a to_o the_o operation_n in_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o member_n make_v the_o increase_n of_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o itself_o in_o charity_n reflect_v or_o all_o this_o and_o tell_v i_o whether_o in_o this_o body_n be_v god_n elect_v or_o no_o whether_o it_o be_v visible_a or_o invisible_a whether_o it_o be_v many_o body_n or_o one_o body_n and_o whether_o this_o body_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n 17._o but_o now_o let_v we_o to_o our_o argument_n again_o saint_n paul_n teach_v in_o this_o chapter_n that_o god_n have_v provide_v continual_a visible_a mean_n to_o keep_v man_n from_o error_n therefore_o these_o mean_n
be_v by_o his_o providence_n keep_v free_a from_o error_n you_o will_v feign_v answer_n that_o to_o the_o end_n the_o church-proposition_n do_v settle_v christian_n in_o faith_n and_o infallible_o guide_v they_o it_o need_v not_o be_v keep_v infallible_a and_o free_a from_o error_n but_o how_o then_o be_o i_o infallible_o right_a as_o christian_n do_v believe_v they_o be_v if_o the_o rule_n which_o i_o do_v follow_v be_v not_o so_o if_o i_o be_v always_o as_o that_o and_o that_o be_v some_o time_n wrong_v how_o be_o i_o ever_o right_a suppose_v that_o do_v err_v and_o that_o i_o follow_v it_o as_o christian_n here_o by_o saint_n paul_n be_v warrant_v to_o foilowe_v the_o church_n do_v not_o i_o run_v into_o the_o same_o error_n if_o you_o insist_v in_o this_o error_n carpentar_n and_o mason_n will_v hiss_v at_o your_o doctrine_n 18._o this_o be_v yet_o further_o confirm_v because_o as_o s._n paul_n here_o make_v the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n to_o direct_v our_o faith_n so_o do_v our_o saviour_n himself_o in_o the_o gospel_n warrant_v man_n to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n teach_v say_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o to_o their_o successor_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o and_o again_o 17._o luk_n 10._o ●_o matth._n 1●_n 17._o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_a and_o the_o publican_n how_o can_v this_o be_v true_a if_o a_o man_n may_v contemn_v all_o the_o church_n as_o you_o do_v and_o if_o all_o the_o church_n may_v err_v if_o to_o hear_v the_o church_n be_v to_o hear_v christ_n sure_a christ_n speak_v when_o the_o church_n do_v the_o word_n be_v his_o word_n in_o her_o mouth_n and_o if_o they_o be_v his_o word_n they_o be_v not_o lie_v they_o be_v true_a 19_o touch_v the_o place_n of_o saint_n paul_n bid_v your_o brother_n puritan_n observe_v here_o with_o you_o that_o as_o you_o have_v now_o learned_a if_o you_o be_v not_o incapable_a of_o learning_n the_o church_n whereof_o saint_n paul_n speak_v be_v visible_a and_o that_o assistance_n in_o teach_v be_v give_v according_a to_o the_o divinity_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o contrary_n be_v a_o mere_a shift_n and_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n to_o experience_n and_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o god_n people_n they_o have_v not_o each_o one_o immediate_a revelation_n but_o be_v instruct_v by_o visible_a man_n such_o our_o saviour_n do_v send_v to_o teach_v nation_n and_o such_o will_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n to_o this_o purpose_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v here_o tell_v us._n such_o be_v those_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n endowe_n with_o his_o gift_n to_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o saint_n or_o holy_a one_o of_o which_o gift_n the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o a_o other_o place_n 5.6.7.8_o rom._n 12._o v._o ●_o 5.6.7.8_o as_o in_o one_o body_n we_o have_v many_o member_n but_o all_o the_o member_n have_v not_o one_o action_n so_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n and_o each_o one_o another_o member_n and_o have_v gift_n according_a to_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v give_v we_o different_a either_o prophecy_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o ministry_n in_o minister_a or_o he_o that_o teach_v in_o doctrine_n he_o that_o exhort_v in_o exhort_v etc._n etc._n here_o be_v the_o spiritte_v of_o god_n in_o a_o visible_a body_n a_o body_n i_o say_v manifest_o visible_a in_o manifold_a operation_n and_o function_n here_o describe_v in_o this_o body_n this_o visible_a body_n the_o spiritte_v be_v and_o in_o the_o same_o be_v god_n elect_v it_o be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o this_o mystical_a body_n be_v one_o 5_o ●_o 5_o as_o you_o have_v read_v in_o the_o apostle_n word_n the_o like_a discourse_n he_o have_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n where_o the_o unity_n of_o this_o body_n wherein_o s._n paul_n also_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v and_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o the_o same_o one_o body_n contain_v in_o it_o the_o predestinate_a unless_o you_o will_v exclude_v saint_n paul_n and_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v commend_v there_o be_v division_n of_o grace_n but_o one_o spiritte_v &_o 1._o corinth_n 12._o v._n 4.5.6_o c_o &_o and_o there_o be_v division_n of_o ministration_n but_o one_o lord_n and_o there_o be_v division_n of_o operation_n but_o one_o god_n which_o work_v all_o in_o all_o and_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spiritte_v be_v give_v unto_o every_o one_o to_o profit_n to_o one_o certes_o by_o the_o spiritte_v be_v give_v the_o word_n of_o wisdom_n and_o to_o another_o the_o word_n of_o knowledge_n according_a to_o the_o same_o spiritte_v to_o another_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n to_o another_o prophecy_n to_o another_o discern_v of_o spirit_n to_o another_o kind_n of_o tongue_n to_o another_o interpretation_n of_o language_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n work_v one_o and_o the_o same_o spiritte_v divide_v to_o every_o one_o according_a as_o he_o will_n this_o be_v the_o body_n which_o have_v the_o spiritte_v and_o these_o be_v the_o function_n 12.13.14_o v._o 12.13.14_o and_o these_o be_v visible_a to_o they_o which_o have_v eye_n for_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n whereas_o they_o be_v many_o yet_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o christ_n for_o in_o one_o spiritte_v be_v we_o all_o baptize_v into_o one_o whether_o jew_n or_o gentile_n 20._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d v._n 20._o or_o bondman_n or_o free_a and_o in_o one_o spiritte_v we_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v for_o the_o body_n also_o be_v not_o one_o member_n but_o many_o etc._n etc._n now_o there_o be_v many_o member_n indeed_o but_o one_o body_n thus_o far_o saint_n paul_n wherein_o he_o have_v confute_v the_o puritan_n error_n of_o two_o church_n and_o accuratelie_o declare_v the_o visibilitie_n of_o god_n church_n and_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o i_o will_v have_v you_o mark_v particular_o how_o s._n paul_n and_o consequent_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o predestinate_a be_v baptize_v into_o the_o same_o one_o visible_a body_n and_o be_v part_n of_o it_o which_o the_o greek_a text_n do_v yet_o express_v more_o distinctlie_o 20._o a_o nine_o way_n the_o divine_a assistance_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o great_a divine_a and_o apostle_n unto_o timothy_n and_o thus_o you_o may_v conceive_v it_o the_o church_n or_o congregation_n arg._n 9_o of_o christian_a man_n can_v be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n without_o divine_a assistance_n for_o man_n leave_v to_o themselves_o may_v be_v mistake_v in_o divine_a matter_n but_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n therefore_o it_o have_v divine_a assistance_n the_o proposition_n be_v clear_a and_o confess_v 14.15_o ●_o tim._n 3._o v._n 14.15_o the_o assumption_n i_o find_v in_o saint_n paul_n these_o thing_n i_o write_v unto_o thou_o timothy_n hope_v that_o i_o shall_v come_v to_o thou_o quick_o but_o if_o i_o tarry_v long_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o converse_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 21._o you_o try_v many_o way_n to_o answer_n this_o argument_n but_o none_o will_v serve_v the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o teach_v as_o long_o as_o it_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o teach_v accord_v to_o it_o this_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o deep_a divinity_n can_v a_o heretic_n can_v a_o turk_n can_v a_o atheist_n can_v a_o devil_n err_v as_o long_o as_o he_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o teach_v according_a to_o it_o be_v these_o pillar_n of_o truth_n the_o second_o be_v that_o those_o word_n be_v mean_v of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n take_v your_o spectacle_n and_o read_v again_o the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n what_o church_n be_v that_o but_o the_o catholic_a wherein_o timothy_n and_o all_o good_a christian_n be_v this_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n the_o three_o be_v that_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o invisible_a church_n this_o be_v likewise_o against_o the_o text_n for_o the_o apostle_n in_o all_o that_o chapter_n do_v discourse_n of_o conversation_n of_o christian_a people_n very_o visible_a and_o tell_v timothy_n that_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o say_v there_o be_v direction_n for_o he_o to_o know_v how_o he_o be_v to_o carry_v himself_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n read_v the_o text_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a 22._o the_o last_o argument_n i_o make_v
have_v answer_v they_o i_o go_v to_o the_o second_o verse_n and_o demand_v all_o the_o same_o and_o they_o i_o go_v to_o the_o three_o and_o demand_v all_o the_o same_o and_o when_o this_o chapter_n be_v do_v i_o go_v to_o the_o next_o and_o so_o on_o forward_o through_o the_o bible_n verse_n after_o verse_n till_o i_o come_v to_o the_o last_o verse_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n or_o revelation_n 62._o you_o will_v peradventure_o marvel_v that_o i_o do_v include_v that_o book_n too_o because_o it_o be_v full_a of_o obscure_a mystery_n notwithstanding_o i_o will_v along_o through_o that_o also_o with_o all_o these_o demand_n for_o there_o be_v mean_n to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v sufficient_a to_o open_v the_o sense_n of_o each_o verse_n when_o the_o circumstance_n do_v require_v it_o and_o you_o dispute_v against_o we_o out_o of_o it_o and_o allege_v under_o the_o title_n of_o manifest_a scripture_n free_a from_o all_o ambiguity_n the_o deep_a mystery_n that_o be_v there_o moreover_o the_o prophecy_n there_o contain_v will_v be_v manifest_a in_o the_o end_n as_o the_o prophecy_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o his_o church_n be_v now_o open_a to_o the_o world_n the_o spiritte_v also_o do_v open_a to_o learned_a man_n many_o thing_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o vulgar_a and_o be_v not_o yet_o by_o general_a decree_n define_v because_o the_o common_a exigence_n of_o the_o church_n require_v not_o the_o open_a and_o public_a notice_n of_o they_o yet_o these_o may_v be_v define_v if_o need_n be_v as_o many_o thing_n by_o occasion_n of_o your_o heresy_n infest_v and_o endanger_v god_n people_n have_v be_v of_o late_a 63._o you_o will_v also_o wonder_v that_o i_o speak_v of_o many_o sense_n but_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v as_o i_o do_v because_o god_n word_n be_v full_a of_o sense_n as_o before_o i_o say_v and_o some_o time_n so_o many_o sense_n do_v occur_v in_o the_o same_o speech_n that_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o determine_v which_o god_n intend_v or_o whether_o he_o do_v intend_v more_o them_z one_o and_o that_o i_o go_v not_o further_o to_o fetch_v example_n the_o word_n now_o cite_v be_v very_o hard_o in_o the_o begin_n god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n what_o be_v this_o begin_n what_o kind_n of_o make_v do_v he_o speak_v of_o what_o do_v he_o mean_v by_o heaven_n and_o earth_n these_o earth_n in_o the_o begin_n god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o find_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n as_o you_o will_v conceive_v if_o you_o attend_v and_o ponder_v each_o the_o begin_n what_o be_v it_o be_v it_o the_o begin_n of_o time_n which_o he_o mean_v or_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n before_o he_o make_v time_n or_o be_v this_o begin_n god_n eternal_a word_n or_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v signify_v by_o these_o 64._o saint_n augustine_n a_o great_a scholar_n and_o a_o man_n of_o the_o church_n primitive_a and_o one_o of_o god_n elect_v do_v search_v with_o great_a diligence_n and_o earnest_a prayer_n in_o his_o old_a age_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o twelve_o book_n of_o his_o confession_n where_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o scripture●●o_o be_v so_o profound_a that_o it_o be_v horror_n to_o look_v into_o they_o he_o bring_v many_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n and_o after_o a_o long_a discussion_n 31._o aug._n l._n 12._o confess_v c._n 31._o and_o serious_a weigh_v of_o the_o difficulty_n conclude_v thus_o when_o one_o say_v the_o prophet_n understand_v that_o which_o i_o do_v and_o another_o that_o which_o i._o i_o think_v i_o speak_v more_o religious_o why_o not_o both_o if_o both_o be_v true_a and_o if_o any_o body_n see_v in_o these_o word_n some_o three_o thing_n or_o four_o or_o some_o other_o at_o all_o whatsoever_o why_o may_v not_o he_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v see_v all_o those_o thing_n by_o who_o one_o god_n have_v temper_v holy_a write_v to_o many_o man_n judgment_n which_o be_v to_o see_v diverse_a thing_n than_o he_o add_v something_o in_o commendation_n of_o that_o full_a kind_n of_o stile_n and_o in_o fine_a resolve_n in_o any_o wise_n when_o he_o write_v these_o word_n he_o understand_v and_o think_v whatsoever_o truth_n we_o can_v find_v and_o whatsoever_o we_o can_v not_o or_o can_v yet_o but_o may_v be_v find_v in_o they_o mark_v this_o devinitie_n well_o and_o remember_v who_o it_o be_v 65._o i_o forbear_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o assistance_n give_v to_o the_o prophet_n and_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n in_o all_o they_o do_v write_v and_o publish_v as_o god_n word_n which_o do_v afford_v i_o a_o other_o argument_n as_o hard_o for_o you_o to_o answer_v as_o the_o former_a i_o will_v not_o here_o discover_v the_o gap_n you_o lie_v open_a to_o infinite_a heresy_n about_o admit_v about_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o loathe_v to_o let_v the_o world_n see_v how_o scandalous_a your_o doctrine_n i●●●w_v you_o oppose_v christianity_n under_o the_o colour_n of_o reformation_n and_o do_v what_o you_o can_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o other_o may_v stagger_v in_o all_o as_o you_o peradventure_o do_v and_o so_o the_o devil_n get_v the_o day_n but_o all_o your_o endeavour_n poor_a man_n come_v to_o short_a you_o shoot_v your_o arrow_n against_o heaven_n which_o they_o hurt_v not_o but_o wound_v yourselves_o in_o the_o return_n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v build_v on_o a_o rock_n and_o a_o few_o word_n defend_v it_o such_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n against_o all_o that_o heretic_n and_o pagan_n and_o persecutor_n and_o impostor_n and_o devil_n 16.18_o matt._n 16.18_o can_v attempt_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o these_o word_n have_v defend_v it_o these_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n against_o all_o adversary_n whatsoever_o and_o we_o be_v fool_n if_o now_o we_o shall_v be_v afraid_a we_o be_v safe_a we_o be_v secure_a the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v our_o foundation_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v our_o direction_n and_o our_o lord_n round_o about_o we_o for_o ever_o i_o conclude_v and_o because_o you_o seem_v to_o take_v the_o scripture_n the_o spirit_n jesus_n christ_n for_o judge_n of_o controversy_n when_o you_o talk_v at_o home_n before_o your_o parish_n to_o stop_v this_o brag_n of_o you_o i_o here_o present_a this_o controversy_n of_o we_o about_o the_o assistance_n to_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o divine_a spirit_n to_o jesus_n christ_n in_o these_o term_n whether_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o teach_v some_o truth_n only_a which_o you_o call_v fundamental_a or_o other_o also_o which_o you_o call_v not_o fundamental_a the_o answer_n be_v all._n 16.13_o io._n 16.13_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n these_o be_v god_n word_n i_o believe_v they_o and_o here_o i_o rest_n the_o four_o chapter_n show_v how_o catholic_n all_o believe_v the_o same_o though_o some_o more_o distinct_o then_z other_o and_o the_o reason_n why_o heretic_n agree_v not_o 66._o that_o i_o may_v impart_v unto_o you_o now_o the_o manner_n of_o discourse_n which_o i_o form_n unto_o myself_o sometime_o in_o this_o business_n you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o all-teaching_a spirit_n or_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n and_o that_o his_o organ_n be_v the_o church_n wherein_o he_o remain_v and_o teach_v as_o i_o have_v declare_v this_o spiritte_v by_o the_o foresay_a organ_n or_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o those_o which_o believe_v and_o submit_v their_o understandïg_n to_o this_o judgement_n and_o visible_a tribunal_n be_v all_o one_o in_o faith_n every_o one_o believe_v all_o which_o the_o church_n thus_o assist_v do_v hold_v and_o believe_v and_o therefore_o all_o the_o same_o if_o i_o think_v you_o conceive_v not_o my_o meaning_n i_o will_v deliver_v myself_o plain_o thus_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o together_o or_o the_o collection_n of_o point_n which_o it_o hold_v be_v but_o one_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n or_o collection_n of_o point_n and_o not_o only_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n take_v in_o gross_a but_o every_o catholic_a do_v believe_v it_o all_o and_o therefore_o take_v any_o two_o catholic_n who_o soever_o where_o and_o whensoever_o they_o live_v and_o their_o belief_n be_v the_o same_o to_o the_o last_o point_n or_o title_n because_o each_o believe_v all_o that_o the_o other_o believe_v as_o i_o have_v say_v but_o the_o thing_n which_o trouble_v you_o
be_v your_o ignorance_n in_o the_o manner_n 67._o know_v therefore_o secondlie_o that_o two_o way_n a_o man_n may_v believe_v all_o which_o the_o church_n teach_v to_o be_v true_a one_o way_n be_v by_o acknowledge_v each_o point_n of_o her_o doctrine_n in_o particular_a because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o and_o by_o she_o do_v avouch_v it_o and_o this_o faith_n be_v unfold_v a_o other_o be_v by_o acknowledge_v in_o general_a and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o gross_a all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o church_n do_v teach_v not_o descend_v into_o the_o particular_a consideration_n of_o each_o and_o this_o be_v implicit_a or_o enfold_v faith_n because_o in_o it_o be_v enfold_v all_o the_o particular_n which_o the_o church_n do_v teach_v 68_o by_o this_o distinction_n of_o unfolded_a and_o enfold_v faith_n you_o now_o know_v my_o meaning_n and_o it_o be_v this_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o catholic_n both_o learn_v and_o unlern_v late_a and_o ancient_a be_v not_o equal_o unfold_v but_o yet_o be_v all_o one_o because_o that_o be_v enfold_v in_o one_o faith_n which_o be_v unfold_v with_o a_o other_o and_o thus_o a_o man_n who_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o still_o do_v increase_v in_o divine_a knowledge_n learn_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o the_o same_o faith_n all_o the_o while_n thus_o be_v the_o people_n and_o their_o pastor_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n though_o the_o pastor_n know_v and_o believe_v more_o in_o particular_a than_o the_o clown_n ever_o hear_v of_o thus_o be_v s._n augustine_n and_o his_o mother_n monica_n of_o one_o religion_n though_o she_o know_v not_o all_o the_o devinitie_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o scripture_n in_o particular_a which_o he_o know_v thus_o be_v the_o corinthian_n and_o s._n paul_n thus_o be_v we_o and_o the_o old_a father_n the_o father_n and_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o thus_o be_v the_o late_a church_n and_o the_o primitive_a unite_v in_o faith_n because_o nothing_o be_v general_o believe_v now_o which_o be_v not_o then_o general_o believe_v though_o now_o something_o be_v more_o unfold_v in_o the_o general_a belief_n of_o the_o community_n i_o say_v nothing_o of_o some_o eminent_a man_n of_o those_o time_n then_o be_v by_o the_o multitude_n believe_v in_o particular_a or_o unfold_v then_o and_o something_o may_v have_v be_v then_o unfold_v which_o be_v not_o so_o common_o know_v at_o this_o tyme._n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o the_o apostle_n know_v more_o in_o particular_a than_o man_n do_v now_o 69._o by_o the_o same_o doctrine_n you_o may_v understand_v how_o the_o catholic_n in_o the_o whole_a body_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o this_o day_n though_o infinite_a have_v be_v all_o of_o one_o religion_n and_o the_o same_o with_o we_o notwithstanding_o that_o each_o clown_n know_v not_o all_o in_o particular_a which_o the_o learned_a do_v yea_o notwithstanding_o many_o learned_a know_v not_o all_o in_o particular_a and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o in_o this_o principle_n i_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n and_o follow_v her_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n each_o have_v all_o whether_o he_o be_v learned_a or_o unlearned_a and_o every_o catholic_a do_v this_o and_o he_o who_o do_v it_o not_o be_v no_o catholic_n 70._o you_o think_v peradventure_o that_o no_o two_o be_v exact_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n unless_o their_o faith_n be_v equal_o distinct_a in_o object_n and_o unfold_v equal_o which_o conceit_n if_o it_o be_v true_a none_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n nor_o with_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o they_o who_o believe_v not_o distinctlie_o and_o in_o particular_a as_o many_o point_n as_o they_o do_v which_o be_v a_o gross_a error_n in_o christianity_n and_o make_v as_o many_o religion_n almost_o as_o man_n be_v you_o in_o your_o parish_n all_o of_o one_o religion_n or_o not_o if_o you_o be_v then_o by_o your_o rule_n who_o can_v abide_v implicit_a faith_n each_o old_a wife_n and_o young_a girl_n know_v as_o much_o in_o particular_a in_o the_o bible_n and_o devinitie_n as_o yourself_o or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o how_o they_o be_v exact_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o you_o i_o know_v you_o will_v run_v to_o fundamental_n but_o the_o shift_n will_v not_o serve_v because_o agreement_n in_o fundamental_n in_o your_o sense_n do_v not_o suffice_v to_o the_o exact_a agreement_n in_o religion_n for_o we_o and_o you_o be_v not_o of_o one_o religion_n as_o all_o the_o world_n know_v and_o yet_o you_o say_v that_o we_o disagree_v not_o in_o fundamental_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v infinite_a way_n to_o err_v against_o faith_n otherwise_o he_o that_o do_v obstinate_o deny_v all_o the_o bible_n and_o every_o verse_n of_o it_o except_v those_o only_o wherein_o be_v one_o of_o your_o fundamental_n which_o fundamental_n as_o you_o recon_fw-mi they_o be_v very_o few_o and_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n with_o baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n he_o i_o say_v who_o do_v obstinate_o this_o be_v no_o heretic_n but_o a_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n exact_o howsoever_o he_o be_v detest_v by_o the_o christian_a world_n 71._o have_v declare_v the_o reason_n why_o catholic_n be_v all_o of_o one_o religion_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o common_a union_n in_o one_o universal_a principle_n contain_v their_o particular_a consent_n in_o the_o rest_n as_o occasion_n do_v require_v to_o which_o general_a principle_n they_o be_v all_o move_v by_o the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v not_o amiss_o now_o to_o look_v about_o for_o the_o original_a cause_n why_o heretic_n be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o religion_n since_o they_o resolve_v all_o or_o pretend_v to_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o spirit_n i_o need_v not_o go_v far_o to_o find_v it_o out_o for_o it_o be_v know_v by_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o heretic_n he_o be_v a_o man_n who_o make_v his_o own_o election_n by_o his_o private_a judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o have_v cast_v of_o church_n authority_n and_o put_v his_o own_o wit_n in_o place_n to_o judge_v each_o take_v where_o and_o what_o he_o like_v and_o their_o judgment_n be_v diverse_a they_o take_v diverse_a thing_n and_o expound_v diverslie_o 74._o neither_o do_v the_o scripture_n serve_v the_o turn_n in_o this_o case_n first_o because_o there_o be_v disagreement_n which_o be_v scripture_n which_o cause_n must_v be_v first_o determine_v by_o some_o judge_n and_o this_o judge_n to_o each_o heretic_n be_v his_o own_o wit_n secondlie_o it_o be_v obscure_a and_o therefore_o there_o be_v infinite_a variety_n in_o guess_v at_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o as_o we_o see_v by_o the_o experience_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n and_o in_o this_o case_n likewise_o each_o heretic_n do_v adore_v his_o own_o judgement_n as_o for_o the_o spirit_n that_o of_o god_n be_v not_o among_o heretic_n but_o in_o the_o church_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v since_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o the_o church_n and_o their_o spirit_n opposite_a it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v another_o and_o that_o erroneous_a and_o by_o the_o mulplicitie_n of_o judgment_n and_o contradiction_n among_o themselves_o it_o appear_v evidentlie_o that_o they_o be_v many_o and_o no_o marvel_n since_o each_o crowch_v unto_o his_o own_o since_o each_o have_v his_o maozim_n within_o himself_o this_o therefore_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o arian_n nestorian_n lutheran_n &c._n &c._n though_o they_o be_v all_o against_o the_o catholic_a be_v not_o of_o one_o religion_n among_o themselves_o 73._o neither_o will_v the_o consequence_n be_v good_a if_o you_o shall_v argue_v thus_o luther_n receave_v the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n and_o caluin_n receave_v the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o luther_n and_o caluin_n be_v of_o one_o religion_n it_o do_v not_o hold_v i_o say_v since_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o same_o sense_n nor_o be_v unite_v in_o any_o one_o common_a mean_a to_o receive_v it_o and_o be_v the_o argument_n good_a it_o will_v prove_v caluinist_n and_o arian_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n since_o each_o receive_v the_o letter_n 74._o hence_o it_o come_v also_o that_o all_o heretic_n can_v have_v one_o definition_n but_o that_o every_o one_o be_v to_o be_v define_v according_a to_o the_o point_n he_o do_v hold_v in_o particular_a because_o of_o his_o difference_n from_o other_o in_o the_o sense_n though_o perhaps_o he_o admit_v the_o letter_n with_o other_o and_o in_o take_v this_o sense_n he_o be_v not_o bound_v by_o any_o authority_n common_a to_o he_o and_o to_o other_o heretic_n but_o only_o by_o his_o own_o will_n and_o conceit_n since_o therefore_o there_o be_v difference_n among_o heretic_n and_o that_o this_o
find_v to_o hold_v with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o meaning_n and_o consent_n that_o without_o all_o scruple_n and_o doubt_n must_v be_v the_o true_a and_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n whosoever_o believe_v that_o christ_n come_v in_o our_o flesh_n and_o that_o he_o arise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n in_o the_o same_o flesh_n in_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o suffer_v 4._o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccl._n c._n 4._o and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n with_o god_n and_o one_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o one_o unchangeable_a word_n of_o the_o father_n by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v but_o do_v so_o disagree_v with_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n that_o they_o hold_v not_o communion_n with_o the_o whole_a as_o far_o as_o ever_o it_o be_v spread_v about_o the_o world_n but_o be_v find_v separate_a in_o some_o part_n or_o corner_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n 5._o prosp_n de_fw-fr promise_v &_o praedic_fw-la dei_fw-la par_fw-fr 4._o c._n 5._o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n deliver_v in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o posterity_n the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n peaceable_a and_o one_o have_v consecrate_v the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n with_o their_o blood_n and_o memory_n according_a to_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n a_o christian_a communicate_v with_o this_o general_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_a eccl._n s._n cypri_n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccl._n he_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o be_v a_o heretic_n there_o be_v one_o head_n and_o one_o origin_n and_o one_o mother_n by_o the_o issue_n of_o her_o fecundity_n copious_a by_o her_o increase_n we_o be_v bear_v we_o be_v nourish_v with_o her_o milk_n with_o her_o spirit_n we_o be_v animate_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v defile_v with_o adultery_n she_o be_v pure_a and_o honest_a she_o know_v one_o house_n and_o with_o chaste_a bashfulness_n keep_v the_o sanctity_n of_o one_o bed_n this_o church_n preserve_v we_o in_o god_n this_o advance_v to_o the_o kingdom_n the_o child_n she_o have_v bring_v forth_o whosoever_o divide_v from_o this_o church_n cleave_v to_o the_o adultress_n he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o church_n he_o can_v have_v god_n his_o father_n who_o have_v not_o the_o church_n to_o his_o mother_n in_o the_o church_n 40._o s._n iren._n l._n 9_o adu_fw-la haere●_n c._n 40._o god_n have_v constitute_v apostle_n prophet_n doctor_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o which_o those_o be_v not_o partaker_n who_o repair_v not_o unto_o the_o church_n where_o the_o church_n be_v there_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v there_o be_v the_o church_n and_o all_o grace_n 4●_n idem_fw-la l._n ●_o c._n 4●_n we_o must_v obey_v those_o priest_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n those_o that_o have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n who_o tegeather_o with_o episcopal_a power_n have_v according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n receive_v the_o certain_a gift_n of_o truth_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n who_o depart_v from_o the_o original_a succession_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v assemble_v to_o have_v suspect_v either_o as_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n or_o hypocrite_n ●lt_n ●actant_fw-la ●_o 4._o 〈◊〉_d ●nstitut_o c._n ●lt_n and_o all_o these_o do_v fall_v from_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v only_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o have_v the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o wellspring_n of_o truth_n the_o dwell_a place_n of_o faith_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n into_o which_o whosoever_o enter_v not_o and_o from_o which_o whosoever_o depart_v be_v without_o all_o hope_n of_o life_n 39_o 〈◊〉_d aug._n the_o ●de_n ad_fw-la ●et_o c._n 39_o and_o eternal_a salvation_n hold_v for_o most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a that_o no_o heretic_n nor_o schismatique_n though_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n though_o he_o give_v alm_n never_o so_o large_o yea_o though_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n can_v possible_o be_v save_v unless_o he_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o the_o catholic_a church_n 70._o i_o omit_v many_o other_o grave_a speech_n of_o holy_a father_n to_o this_o effect_n of_o consent_v with_o the_o church_n in_o faith_n and_o submit_v our_o judgement_n thereunto_o and_o of_o s._n augustine_n particular_o who_o i_o do_v allege_v more_o willing_o because_o you_o pretend_v to_o honour_v he_o as_o where_o he_o say_v for_o his_o part_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n ●_o 〈◊〉_d aug._n count_v ep._n fund_z c._n ●_o unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v he_o that_o he_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o people_n 4._o ●_o c._n 4._o and_o nation_n by_o a_o authority_n beget_v with_o miracle_n nourish_v with_o hope_n increase_v by_o antiquity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o most_o insolent_a madness_n to_o dispute_v whether_o that_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v which_o be_v frequent_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n through_o the_o world_n ●_o ep._n 118._o c._n ●_o moreover_o what_o s._n augustine_n say_v of_o s._n cyprian_n he_o may_v have_v say_v of_o any_o other_o father_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o will_v have_v yield_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o will_v the_o father_n hold_v communion_n with_o any_o who_o do_v oppose_v themselves_o to_o the_o definition_n of_o general_a counsel_n or_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o hold_v they_o for_o heretic_n 81._o and_o thus_o much_o for_o this_o point_n wherein_o i_o have_v not_o allege_v the_o foresay_a authority_n to_o move_v you_o for_o i_o know_v that_o in_o your_o fine_a your_o vide_fw-la i._o rain_n concl._n 2._o fine_a conscience_n you_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o the_o father_n neither_o a_o part_n nor_o all_o together_o in_o general_n council_n nor_o stoop_v to_o their_o spirit_n nor_o believe_v their_o creed_n but_o i_o have_v do_v it_o to_o show_v you_o that_o i_o have_v learn_v of_o they_o the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o tell_v you_o and_o that_o by_o their_o example_n i_o do_v submit_v my_o understanding_n to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o controversy_n and_o secure_o rest_v in_o her_o judgement_n for_o she_o with_o infinite_a eye_n do_v always_o diligent_o look_v on_o god_n word_n and_o with_o infinite_a care_n and_o industry_n attend_v unto_o the_o truth_n good_a wit_n though_o learn_v may_v mistake_v each_o scholar_n be_v not_o a_o saint_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v divide_v among_o man_n but_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o spirit_n all_o the_o saint_n and_o predestinate_a the_o high_a authority_n and_o all_o mean_n possible_a for_o mortal_a man_n to_o learn_v the_o truth_n be_v in_o the_o church_n there_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o gospel_n deliver_v the_o will_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n there_o the_o secretary_n of_o heaven_n do_v register_n god_n word_n and_o there_o jesus_n christ_n our_o master_n do_v teach_v and_o bring_v up_o his_o elect_n and_o prepare_v they_o for_o his_o high_a school_n of_o devinitie_n wherein_o the_o cherubin_n and_o seraphin_n have_v their_o order_n from_o from_o you_o say_v that_o we_o obtrude_v unto_o you_o doctrine_n for_o divine_a which_o be_v not_o such_o controversy_n for_o the_o novice_n in_o controversy_n at_o some_o part_n of_o the_o bible_n invocation_n of_o saint_n purgatory_n we_o deny_v that_o we_o propose_v any_o thing_n for_o divine_a and_o reveal_v which_o be_v not_o indeed_o divine_a and_o reveal_v this_o be_v therefore_o a_o controversy_n betwixt_o us._n what_o way_n be_v there_o to_o know_v the_o truth_n in_o this_o controversy_n the_o spirit_n where_o in_o the_o church_n again_o you_o say_v we_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n wrong_v we_o deny_v it_o what_o judge_n the_o spiritte_v of_o truth_n where_o in_o the_o school_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v this_o school_n the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o church_n that_o which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o vrbanus_n 8._o reflect_v well_o on_o this_o discourse_n and_o make_v the_o like_a on_o all_o occasion_n in_o any_o controversy_n of_o faith_n whatsoever_o be_v it_o a_o controversy_n you_o speak_v of_o or_o be_v it_o agree_v on_o both_o side_n if_o a_o controversy_n and_o in_o religion_n the_o truth_n may_v be_v know_v the_o question_n than_o come_v who_o it_o to_o judge_n and_o the_o answer_n be_v the_o spirit_n in_o who_o in_o the_o church_n but_o you_o will_v ask_v why_o must_v we_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o n._n n._n as_o in_o john_n caluin_n for_o example_n i_o answer_v because_o we_o know_v
all_o do_v which_o you_o will_v never_o prove_v as_o long_o as_o the_o bible_n be_v extant_a if_o you_o read_v exodus_fw-la in_o the_o two_o and_o thiti_v chapter_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o when_o moses_n have_v say_v if_o any_o man_n be_v our_o lord_n let_v he_o join_v to_o i_o there_o gather_v unto_o he_o all_o the_o son_n of_o levy_v 32.26_o exod._n 32.26_o and_o these_o be_v no_o small_a company_n as_o you_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o number_n 39_o num._n 3._o v._n 39_o next_o you_o say_v elias_n do_v complain_v that_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o this_o make_v a_o show_n and_o be_v repete_v over_o and_o over_o in_o your_o book_n and_o your_o pulpitte_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o there_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n diverse_a in_o israel_n where_o this_o prophet_n be_v 11.4_o 3._o king_n 19_o v._n 18._o rom._n 11.4_o which_o bow_v not_o before_o baal_n of_o which_o number_n god_n say_v to_o elias_n he_o will_v reserve_v seven_o thousand_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n also_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n there_o be_v public_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n at_o jerusalem_n wherefore_o you_o can_v prove_v by_o this_o place_n that_o the_o church_n fail_v and_o be_v not_o visible_a on_o the_o earth_n if_o we_o will_v grant_v you_o as_o you_o have_v see_v we_o need_v not_o that_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n at_o that_o tyme._n neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o it_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v still_o visible_a in_o both_o kingdom_n one_o of_o they_o only_o do_v suffice_v for_o this_o purpose_n in_o case_n all_o in_o the_o other_o have_v forsake_v god_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o catholic_a and_o christian_a church_n 86._o in_o the_o second_o argument_n you_o tax_v the_o apostle_n rainold●_n 1._o rainold●_n and_o first_o accuse_v s._n peter_n of_o false_a doctrine_n because_o he_o be_v reprehend_v by_o s._n paul_n then_o further_o you_o condemn_v the_o apostle_n all_o of_o error_n against_o faith_n in_o not_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n to_o that_o of_o s._n peter_n which_o old_a heretic_n object_v it_o be_v answer_v fourteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o that_o it_o be_v a_o fault_n of_o conversation_n which_o he_o be_v tax_v for_o not_o of_o doctrine_n the_o fault_n be_v set_v down_o by_o s._n paul_n in_o these_o word_n 2.12_o gal._n 2.12_o for_o before_o certain_a come_v from_o james_n he_o peter_n do_v eat_v with_o the_o gentile_n but_o when_o they_o be_v come_v he_o withdraw_v and_o separate_v himself_o fear_v they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o circumcision_n this_o carriage_n of_o s._n peter_n s._n paul_n do_v repre-to_a judaize_n his_o make_v other_o by_o his_o example_n hear_v and_o be_v in_o this_o but_o here_o be_v no_o false_a doctrine_n maintain_v and_o publish_v by_o he_o much_o less_o by_o the_o apostle_n all_o teach_v and_o general_o by_o the_o church_n believe_v whereof_o we_o speak_v now_o in_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o you_o tax_v by_o this_o occasion_n there_o may_v have_v be_v fault_n also_o for_o they_o be_v man_n but_o from_o they_o in_o general_a counsel_n there_o have_v come_v no_o false_a doctrine_n nor_o ever_o will_n 87._o the_o second_o parr_n of_o your_o objection_n have_v no_o difficulty_n because_o we_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v learn_v the_o particular_n of_o faith_n by_o degree_n as_o you_o may_v observe_v easy_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o their_o slowness_n to_o believe_v the_o point_n mention_v but_o not_o any_o error_n maintain_v by_o they_o for_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v reprehend_v neither_o be_v the_o all-teaching_a spirit_n as_o yet_o come_v our_o saviour_n not_o be_v ascend_v who_o therefore_o do_v instruct_v they_o in_o the_o matter_n his_o own_o self_n now_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o defend_v be_v not_o that_o the_o apostle_n believe_v all_o in_o particular_a from_o the_o first_o time_n they_o be_v call_v or_o that_o in_o conversation_n nothing_o ever_o happen_v amiss_o in_o any_o one_o of_o they_o but_o that_o after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o catholic_a church_n do_v never_o believe_v or_o teach_v error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o read_v over_o and_o over_o that_o you_o mistake_v not_o the_o matter_n but_o argue_v to_o the_o purpose_n 88_o a_o three_o argument_n which_o i_o think_v good_a to_o put_v in_o this_o place_n touch_v the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n into_o the_o church_n which_o resolution_n seem_v not_o firm_a because_o it_o be_v make_v into_o authority_n not_o divine_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n alone_o if_o you_o consider_v it_o apart_o not_o add_v thereunto_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o assist_v spirit_n be_v great_a than_o any_o other_o authority_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o divine_a authority_n and_o this_o by_o reason_n of_o a_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o learned_a and_o holy_a man_n which_o be_v in_o it_o of_o infinite_a miracle_n which_o do_v give_v testimony_n of_o a_o greatness_n which_o nature_n wonder_v at_o of_o the_o strange_a union_n of_o world_n of_o people_n in_o one_o obscure_a faith_n with_o a_o constancy_n which_o neither_o flattery_n nor_o fear_n can_v shake_v which_o union_n do_v acknowledge_v no_o cause_n in_o nature_n since_o nature_n incline_v not_o so_o constant_o to_o communion_n and_o uniform_a judgement_n in_o thing_n not_o find_v in_o nature_n as_o god_n incarnate_a the_o son_n in_o substance_n and_o power_n all_o one_o with_o his_o father_n and_o yet_o distinct_a in_o person_n and_o the_o like_a the_o authority_n i_o say_v of_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o these_o and_o such_o other_o motive_n be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o authority_n among_o man_n in_o so_o much_o that_o no_o other_o be_v any_o way_n equal_a to_o it_o and_o therefore_o none_o able_a to_o draw_v a_o wise_a man_n from_o it_o 89._o yet_o this_o alone_a be_v not_o the_o thing_n whereunto_o we_o do_v make_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o we_o make_v it_o into_o the_o testimony_n of_o allmightie_a god_n in_o the_o church_n this_o testimony_n do_v originallie_o move_v our_o faith_n the_o sun_n be_v always_o visible_a in_o itself_o but_o can_v be_v see_v of_o we_o unless_o it_o be_v in_o the_o orb_n above_o our_o hemisphere_n and_o when_o it_o be_v rise_v the_o elevation_n do_v not_o principal_o move_v our_o eye_n but_o the_o sun_n in_o that_o elevation_n do_v move_v it_o to_o see_v both_o sun_n and_o heaven_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n which_o the_o light_n come_v upon_o so_o god_n eternal_a word_n of_o itself_o be_v ever_o apt_a to_o move_v and_o to_o be_v see_v though_o we_o can_v discover_v it_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n unless_o it_o be_v expose_v or_o propose_v to_o we_o in_o the_o firmament_n of_o the_o church_n or_o some_o other_o way_n equivalent_a but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o apply_v our_o faith_n discern_v the_o word_n and_o the_o church_n propose_v it_o and_o all_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v reveal_v wherein_o the_o church-proposition_n do_v concur_v instrumental_o with_o subordination_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o they_o both_o in_o several_a kind_n our_o faith_n depend_v 90._o we_o resolve_v therefore_o into_o authority_n true_o divine_a into_o the_o divine_a spirit_n teach_v in_o the_o church_n or_o if_o you_o will_v have_v a_o long_a way_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v all_o one_o we_o do_v resolve_v into_o the_o present_a church_n assist_v with_o the_o spirit_n this_o present_a church_n do_v resolve_v into_o the_o church_n in_o the_o former_a age_n assist_v by_o the_o spirit_n that_o again_o into_o a_o former_a age_n and_o so_o to_o the_o apostle_n they_o resolve_v into_o christ_n where_o you_o find_v the_o like_a as_o before_o that_o be_v the_o eternal_a and_o increated_a word_n move_v by_o way_n of_o humane_a speech_n and_o the_o apostle_n faith_n depend_v though_o diverslie_o on_o both_o at_o once_o that_o be_v on_o the_o eternal_a word_n as_o on_o the_o original_a motive_n and_o on_o the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n as_o on_o the_o application_n 91._o if_o you_o will_v have_v yet_o another_o way_n take_v the_o motive_n of_o faith_n all_o together_o or_o the_o collection_n of_o they_o as_o application_n and_o the_o prime_a veriry_n as_o formal_a object_n and_o you_o have_v all_o that_o you_o justly_o can_v desire_v in_o the_o collection_n of_o motive_n i_o do_v include_v the_o whole_a church_n these_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o jesus_n christ_n as_o he_o appear_v and_o teach_v and_o all_o the_o miracle_n do_v in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o christian_a catholic_a faith_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o world_n from_o bad_a
to_o good_a which_o can_v be_v from_o no_o bad_a cause_n the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o learned_a man_n use_v to_o bring_v to_o this_o purpose_n and_o take_v in_o this_o collection_n all_o that_o which_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o increated_a authority_n of_o allmightie_a god_n i_o call_v it_o the_o condition_n circumstance_n or_o application_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n which_o formal_a object_n be_v the_o divine_a verity_n reveal_v further_o i_o must_v not_o go_v because_o the_o divine_a verity_n be_v infinite_a and_o therefore_o able_a to_o move_v any_o understanding_n and_o the_o circumstance_n be_v beyond_o all_o exception_n to_o warrant_v the_o prudence_n of_o my_o choice_n i_o have_v use_v some_o school_n term_n in_o this_o answer_n but_o you_o must_v pardon_v i_o for_o it_o be_v a_o school_n point_n as_o you_o know_v and_o fit_v for_o scholar_n only_o 92._o a_o four_o exception_n be_v that_o you_o seek_v the_o will_n of_o god_n more_o sincere_o and_o therefore_o enjoy_v the_o assistance_n which_o we_o do_v not_o because_o we_o rely_v only_o on_o man_n this_o argument_n be_v already_o answer_v in_o effect_n we_o depend_v on_o man_n propose_v and_o as_o instrumental_a or_o ministerial_a cause_n under_o jesus_n christ_n the_o great_a pastor_n and_o sure_o the_o apostle_n on_o who_o the_o primitive_a church_n depend_v be_v man_n also_o but_o principal_o we_o depend_v on_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assist_v in_o and_o by_o the_o church_n for_o your_o sincere_a seek_v of_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o frivolous_a pretence_n since_o you_o do_v not_o take_v the_o mean_n by_o god_n ordain_v to_o find_v it_o jesus_n christ_n have_v leave_v it_o in_o the_o church_n and_o if_o you_o will_v find_v it_o you_o shall_v look_v it_o there_o your_o pretence_n of_o prayer_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n and_o conference_n of_o place_n be_v trick_n only_o to_o delude_v fool_n for_o all_o wise_a man_n know_v that_o christ_n have_v bestow_v all_o help_n necessary_a upon_o the_o church_n and_o that_o in_o the_o church_n be_v the_o power_n of_o interpretation_n and_o sanctity_n and_o general_o all_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o you_o be_v first_o to_o prove_v that_o you_o be_v the_o church_n before_o you_o challenge_v the_o spirit_n and_o his_o gift_n till_o than_o we_o number_v you_o among_o those_o who_o come_v in_o at_o the_o window_n to_o rob_v and_o steal_v the_o soul_n out_o of_o man_n and_o endeavour_n also_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o you_o to_o rob_v the_o church_n of_o god_n of_o her_o endowment_n 93._o for_o the_o sanctity_n of_o our_o church_n wherewith_o you_o will_v equal_v you_o i_o remit_v you_o to_o baronius_n martyrologe_n and_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o like_a catalogue_n from_o your_o holy_a number_n but_o who_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o breed_v saint_n and_o that_o thence_o be_v those_o which_o out_o of_o all_o nation_n tribe_n and_o tongue_n be_v choose_v to_o reign_v with_o jesꝰ_n christ_n yet_o be_v not_o all_o in_o this_o church_n true_o saint_n there_o be_v degree_n of_o incorpotion_n and_o union_n to_o the_o head_n and_o member_n some_o be_v unite_v by_o faith_n and_o charity_n some_o by_o faith_n and_o exterior_a communion_n but_o want_v charity_n and_o they_o have_v some_o kind_n of_o motion_n and_o influence_n from_o christ_n the_o head_n for_o without_o he_o none_o can_v believe_v a_o right_n and_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o great_a mystical_a body_n the_o church_n yet_o they_o want_v the_o principal_a union_n which_o union_n will_v be_v perfect_a and_o constant_a in_o heaven_n where_o the_o church_n shall_v see_v the_o deity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o here_o good_a and_o bad_a be_v mix_v yet_o so_o that_o the_o church_n militant_a shall_v never_o be_v without_o many_o good_a and_o holy_a man_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n this_o be_v the_o covenant_n which_o i_o will_v make_v with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n say_v our_o lord_n 33._o jerem._n 30._o v._o 33._o speak_v of_o the_o christian_a church_n i_o will_v give_v my_o law_n in_o their_o bowel_n and_o in_o the_o hart_n of_o they_o will_v write_v it_o and_o will_v be_v to_o they_o a_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n 27._o ezech._n 37._o five_o 27._o and_o in_o ezechiel_n i_o will_v give_v my_o sanctification_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o for_o ever_o 94._o if_o you_o ask_v i_o whether_o the_o church_n may_v be_v say_v to_o sin_n since_o there_o be_v sinner_n in_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v no._n if_o any_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o church_n but_o contrary_a to_o her_o direction_n and_o spirit_n and_o if_o any_o err_v it_o be_v not_o by_o her_o mean_n but_o contrary_a to_o her_o spirit_n and_o proposition_n so_o that_o neither_o the_o sin_n nor_o the_o error_n of_o particular_a man_n can_v justly_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o church_n since_o they_o work_v not_o in_o those_o case_n by_o the_o common_a judgement_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o their_o own_o private_a apprehension_n and_o affection_n contrary_a to_o the_o church_n will_v and_o rule_v as_o when_o one_o in_o a_o well-instituted_n commonwealth_n do_v secret_o steal_v and_o murder_n it_o be_v his_o private_a action_n it_o be_v not_o the_o action_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o flat_o against_o the_o will_n and_o law_n of_o it_o this_o only_a i_o will_v note_v in_o this_o matter_n that_o every_o mortal_a sin_n do_v not_o destroy_v all_o incorporation_n and_o therefore_o a_o man_n may_v be_v in_o mortal_a sin_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o church_n for_o he_o which_o believe_v do_v participate_v some_o kind_n of_o life_n though_o imperfect_a as_o i_o say_v before_o neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o in_o each_o part_n all_o vital_a power_n be_v for_o a_o man_n foot_n do_v participate_v life_n but_o can_v see_v nor_o hear_v nor_o imagine_v as_o do_v the_o head_n 95._o in_o the_o next_o place_n instead_o of_o a_o argument_n i_o note_v your_o vanity_n in_o heap_v thing_n together_o to_o win_v the_o vulgar_a your_o silken_a discourse_n unless_o they_o be_v flower_v with_o history_n of_o pope_n friar_n and_o monk_n be_v not_o gaudy_a and_o therefore_o this_o embroidery_n must_v not_o be_v want_v i_o will_v not_o loose_a time_n to_o rehearse_v the_o particular_n but_o in_o general_a answer_n thus_o first_o if_o among_o twelve_o apostle_n pick_v out_o by_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n one_o be_v naught_o and_o prove_v a_o apostata_fw-la it_o can_v be_v no_o marvel_n if_o among_o more_o than_o two_o hundred_o pope_n elect_v by_o man_n some_o few_o do_v amiss_o neither_o can_v their_o fault_n prejudice_n papal_a authority_n and_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n or_o redound_v unto_o it_o more_o than_o do_v the_o apostasy_n of_o judas_n prejudice_n apostolical_a power_n and_o christianity_n or_o redound_v unto_o the_o rest_n you_o shall_v have_v consider_v rather_o that_o many_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v be_v know_v saint_n 96._o i_o answer_v secondlie_o for_o friar_n that_o their_o rule_n be_v good_a holy_a and_o beyond_o all_o just_a exception_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o not_o conform_v themselves_o to_o this_o rule_n by_o weakness_n fail_v and_o live_v amiss_o the_o profession_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v condemn_v for_o it_o then_o be_v christianity_n for_o the_o wicked_a conversation_n of_o many_o that_o profess_v it_o and_o the_o story_n of_o friar_n which_o you_o have_v be_v but_o few_o some_o dozen_o peradventure_o be_v they_o a_o thousand_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o great_a whereas_o in_o all_o the_o catholic_a world_n be_v friar_n and_o touch_v monk_n it_o be_v the_o same_o their_o rule_n be_v holy_a and_o their_o conversation_n such_o as_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n have_v be_v leave_v for_o to_o learn_v it_o 9_o 33._o millian_a abbatiarun_n &_o 14._o millia_fw-la prioratuum_fw-la genebr_n a_o 524._o ordinis_fw-la praedicatorum_fw-la feruntur_fw-la fuisse_fw-la 4143._o coenobia_n id_fw-la a_o 1216._o franciscanorum_n svo_fw-la tempore_fw-la 90._o millia_fw-la fuisse_fw-la scribit_fw-la sabellicus_n ennead_n dec_fw-la 9_o l._n 9_o their_o institution_n have_v breed_v many_o saint_n and_o their_o order_n have_v be_v so_o geneneral_o spread_v that_o they_o have_v have_v many_o thousand_o monastery_n at_o a_o time_n among_o so_o many_o to_o have_v happen_v a_o few_o disorder_n be_v no_o wonder_n but_o to_o think_v that_o your_o story_n put_v case_n they_o be_v in_o part_n true_a which_o be_v not_o worth_a examination_n can_v prejudice_n the_o rule_n and_o institution_n be_v very_o childish_a 97._o of_o catholic_n in_o general_n i_o have_v speak_v all_o ready_a they_o be_v not_o all_o saint_n
in_o the_o primitive_a church_n neither_o be_v they_o all_o saint_n at_o this_o day_n many_o be_v call_v few_o choose_v good_a and_o bad_a be_v mingle_v here_o the_o spouse_n be_v black_a and_o fair_a in_o the_o church_n decree_n there_o be_v no_o error_n against_o faith_n no_o rule_n against_o manner_n her_o rule_n be_v irreprehensible_a be_v the_o rule_n of_o christianity_n and_o when_o any_o thing_n be_v amiss_o in_o man_n carriage_n or_o behaviour_n towards_o god_n or_o man_n she_o do_v admonish_v and_o punish_v as_o occasion_n require_v hence_o have_v come_v all_o those_o decree_n of_o reformation_n make_v in_o counsel_n general_a and_o particular_a which_o you_o have_v see_v more_o than_o once_o in_o a_o infinite_a number_n to_o have_v some_o disorder_n be_v incident_a and_o we_o be_v foretell_v that_o scandal_n shall_v be_v 18._o mat._n 18._o but_o consider_v further_o that_o this_o church_n have_v a_o infinite_a company_n of_o holy_a man_n likewise_o and_o that_o all_o which_o arrive_v to_o glory_n shall_v have_v live_v in_o this_o church_n 7._o apoc._n 7._o and_o those_o of_o all_o tribe_n tongue_n and_o nation_n for_o this_o very_a church_n though_o not_o according_a to_o all_o the_o material_a part_n shall_v triumph_n as_o i_o have_v say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n and_o in_o state_n of_o triumph_n shall_v be_v all_o fair_a and_o all_o over_o without_o spot_n she_o shall_v be_v without_o actual_a or_o original_a or_o venial_a sin_n when_o she_o come_v with_o open_a eye_n to_o look_v the_o prime_a verity_n in_o the_o face_n and_o to_o embrace_v the_o divine_a goodness_n with_o all_o the_o latitude_n of_o her_o soul_n the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o the_o protestant_a multiplication_n of_o church_n by_o visible_a and_o invisible_a 68_o in_o this_o place_n before_o i_o conclude_v i_o have_v a_o word_n more_o to_o say_v about_o your_o distinction_n of_o visible_a and_o invisible_a i_o think_v once_o to_o make_v it_o a_o chapter_n in_o the_o first_o book_n one_o of_o your_o great_a leap_n when_o you_o be_v pursue_v end_v in_o it_o from_o luther_n school_n you_o skip_v into_o waldoes_n from_o thence_o you_o thrust_v yourselves_o on_o we_o from_o we_o to_o the_o church_n primitive_a and_o from_o the_o primitive_a church_n you_o get_v quite_o out_o of_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o betake_v yourselves_o to_o inuisibilitie_n in_o regard_n i_o there_o pursue_v you_o i_o think_v i_o say_v to_o speak_v also_o of_o the_o distinction_n there_o but_o the_o thing_n will_v be_v more_o easy_a now_o because_o in_o many_o place_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v i_o have_v discouse_v of_o the_o seqq_fw-la the_o he_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v more_o of_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v find_v it_o exact_o handle_v and_o the_o protestant_a evasion_n all_o clear_o refute_v by_o l._n my_o of_o chalc._n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr auctorae_fw-la essentia_fw-la protestantica_n ecclesia_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 6._o &_o seqq_fw-la visibilitie_n of_o god_n church_n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v one_o and_o visible_a as_o the_o scripture_n do_v witness_v yet_o you_o with_o two_o word_n visible_a and_o invisible_a have_v make_v a_o distinction_n to_o rend_v it_o into_o two_o and_o do_v maintain_v stout_o that_o god_n have_v two_o church_n one_o invisible_a consist_v of_o predestinate_a person_n only_o the_o other_o visible_a which_o do_v exteriorlie_o profess_v the_o faith_n 99_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o the_o faith_n full_a may_v be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n by_o god_n allmightie_a the_o one_o part_n be_v predestinate_a the_o other_o part_n be_v the_o company_n of_o those_o which_o be_v not_o predestinate_a by_o this_o the_o whole_a be_v sufficient_o divide_v for_o every_o man_n in_o the_o company_n belong_v to_o one_o part_n or_o member_n of_o the_o division_n and_o no_o man_n belong_v to_o both_o for_o you_o can_v affirm_v two_o contradictory_n of_o the_o same_o as_o to_o say_v peter_n be_v predestinate_v and_o peter_n be_v not_o predestinate_v this_o be_v so_o i_o demand_v now_o which_o of_o these_o company_n be_v visible_a and_o which_o invisible_a and_o what_o make_v the_o one_o to_o be_v so_o rather_o than_o the_o other_o if_o predestination_n make_v man_n invisible_a why_o do_v not_o reprobation_n make_v man_n invisible_a since_o reprobation_n be_v a_o secret_a as_o hard_o to_o know_v if_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n make_v the_o reprobate_n visible_a why_o can_v not_o profession_n make_v the_o predestinate_a man_n visible_a and_o if_o these_o company_n be_v together_o mingle_v why_o be_v they_o not_o both_o visible_a or_o both_o invisible_a or_o rather_o why_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a company_n visible_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o profession_n and_o communion_n though_o god_n disposition_n towards_o this_o and_o that_o man_n in_o particular_a be_v invisible_a and_o secret_a 100_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o catholic_n be_v the_o church_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v larglie_o heretofore_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o predestinate_a be_v in_o this_o company_n that_o they_o die_v all_o of_o they_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o here_o they_o profess_v their_o faith_n this_o i_o will_v declare_v brief_o and_o then_o i_o will_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o demand_v some_o question_n touch_v your_o invisible_a congregation_n for_o look_v on_o it_o i_o may_v not_o because_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v 101._o first_o therefore_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v well_o consider_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o predestinate_a do_v profess_v their_o faith_n and_o thereby_o do_v manifest_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o this_o also_o our_o saviour_n christ_n require_v of_o his_o servant_n 10.32.33_o matth._n 10.32.33_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v confess_v i_o before_o man_n i_o also_o will_v confess_v he_o before_o my_o father_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v deny_v i_o before_o man_n i_o will_v deny_v he_o before_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n every_o one_o that_o confess_v i_o before_o man_n the_o son_n of_o man_n also_o will_v confess_v he_o before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n 8.9_o luke_n 12._o v._o 8.9_o but_o he_o that_o deni_v i_o before_o man_n shall_v be_v deny_v before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n hereupon_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o have_v be_v at_o all_o time_n and_o whereof_o all_o christian_a nation_n have_v yield_v store_n have_v open_o in_o the_o face_n of_o persecution_n make_v profession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o thereby_o they_o be_v visible_a and_o be_v martyr_n be_v also_o member_n of_o the_o predestinate_v church_n they_o be_v predestinate_a the_o predestinate_a therefore_o and_o the_o visible_a professor_n of_o the_o faith_n may_v be_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n yea_o the_o same_o man_n may_v be_v predestinate_a and_o also_o visible_o profess_v the_o faith_n 102._o secondlie_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v visible_a professor_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n and_o they_o be_v also_o predestinate_a and_o therefore_o member_n of_o the_o predestinate_a church_n the_o same_o man_n therefore_o may_v be_v visible_a and_o predestinate_a the_o same_o church_n may_v be_v visible_a and_o predestinate_a and_o consequent_o visibilitie_n and_o predestination_n divide_v not_o the_o church_n into_o two_o church_n as_o i_o say_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n so_o i_o say_v of_o the_o holy_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v preach_v and_o teach_v visible_o they_o be_v know_v far_o and_o near_o and_o be_v ptedestinate_a also_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o predestinate_a do_v profess_v their_o faith_n the_o same_o faith_n with_o other_o catholic_n with_o other_o in_o their_o communion_n and_o be_v visible_a 103._o thirdlie_o the_o apostolic_a church_n be_v visible_a it_o include_v essential_o public_a person_n as_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n apostolical_a man_n for_o conversion_n of_o nation_n bishop_n pastor_n doctor_n as_o you_o know_v by_o scripture_n now_o these_o public_a person_n be_v manifest_o visible_a pastor_n to_o their_o flock_n bishop_n to_o their_o diocese_n apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n to_o the_o nation_n they_o convert_v the_o apostolical_a chutch_n therefore_o be_v visible_a and_o you_o know_v further_o that_o the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n constant_a symb._n constant_a and_o this_o creed_n you_o profess_v that_o you_o believe_v and_o you_o put_v it_o also_o among_o the_o fundamental_n of_o your_o faith_n the_o catholic_a therefore_o and_o holy_a church_n be_v visible_a 104._o fourthlie_o if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o
of_o their_o visibilitie_n but_o god_n as_o i_o say_v have_v not_o yet_o permit_v the_o book_n of_o life_n to_o be_v copy_v out_o and_o diwlge_v 2.27_o john_n 4.23_o 1._o io._n 2.27_o 109._o you_o object_n first_o that_o true_a worshipper_n adore_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n and_o unction_n teach_v all_o this_o be_v true_a but_o those_o worshipper_n those_o amnointed_a be_v in_o the_o church_n they_o be_v a_o part_n and_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o visible_a community_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o second_o book_n they_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a fold_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o be_v they_o be_v that_o body_n that_o community_n visible_a or_o invisible_a their_o sermon_n be_v not_o they_o hear_v be_v not_o their_o writing_n see_v go_v not_o their_o sound_n over_o all_o the_o world_n why_o then_o they_o be_v visible_a as_o for_o the_o unction_n it_o teach_v the_o catholic_a church_n it_o teach_v man_n to_o give_v assent_n to_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o apostle_n than_o do_v and_o their_o successor_n now_o do_v propose_v they_o may_v preach_v and_o be_v hear_v also_o but_o without_o unction_n the_o people_n will_v not_o believe_v 3._o 1._o cor._n 3._o paul_n plant_v and_o apollo_n water_v but_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n in_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n be_v those_o adorer_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o the_o sanctification_n of_o god_n be_v forever_o the_o apostle_n do_v they_o adore_v in_o spirit_n or_o no_o if_o they_o do_v why_o may_v not_o a_o visible_a church_n do_v so_o if_o they_o do_v not_o who_o will_v believe_v that_o you_o do_v 110._o secondlie_o you_o object_n that_o there_o be_v none_o in_o the_o church_n but_o predestinate_a if_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a you_o say_v true_a if_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o militant_a church_n it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o all_o those_o that_o for_o a_o time_n adhere_v unto_o this_o body_n and_o be_v part_n of_o it_o do_v not_o final_o persevere_v some_o be_v multiply_v above_o number_n and_o believe_v a_o while_n but_o revolt_n and_o fall_v of_o before_o they_o die_v the_o church_n militant_a be_v the_o company_n of_o believer_n in_o communion_n with_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o see_n it_o be_v the_o company_n of_o catholic_n and_o catholic_n some_o be_v in_o charity_n and_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o be_v save_v some_o die_n in_o mortal_a sin_n some_o lose_v their_o faith_n at_o last_o 1_o 1._o tim_n 1_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n some_o make_a shipwreck_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o hymeneus_n and_o alexander_n say_v the_o apostle_n some_o do_v believe_v for_o a_o time_n say_v our_o b._n saviour_n 8.1_o luk._n 8.1_o and_o in_o time_n of_o temptation_n do_v revolt_v and_o the_o spirit_n manifest_o say_v that_o in_o the_o last_o time_n certain_a shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n attend_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n 14._o 1._o tim._n 4_o matth._n 2_o 14._o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o choose_v there_o be_v some_o with_o wedding_n garment_n and_o some_o without_o some_o wise_a virgin_n some_o foolish_a some_o corn_n some_o chaff_n some_o vessel_n of_o honour_n some_o of_o dishonour_n some_o good_a some_o bad_a some_o predestinate_a some_o reprobate_n in_o the_o church_n the_o predestinate_a will_v persevere_v the_o rest_n will_v not_o 111._o i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n wherein_o i_o be_o to_o loosesome_a time_n in_o ask_v a_o question_n or_o two_o about_o your_o dombe-preaching_a church_n about_o the_o saint_n of_o your_o election_n about_o those_o people_n which_o be_v in_o all_o time_n but_o never_o before_o luther_n and_o in_o all_o nation_n before_o his_o time_n but_o no_o wherein_o the_o world_n and_o i_o demand_v first_o whether_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v like_o you_o or_o no_o if_o they_o be_v why_o then_o be_v they_o invisible_a you_o say_v you_o be_v predestinate_a and_o yet_o you_o be_v visible_a notwithstanding_o your_o predestination_n and_o a_o member_n of_o that_o church_n why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o other_o man_n be_v visible_a also_o every_o one_o of_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a visible_a 112._o i_o demand_v secondlie_o whether_o you_o do_v know_v the_o rest_n of_o your_o church_n the_o rest_n of_o your_o predestinate_a brother_n or_o whether_o you_o know_v none_o of_o that_o church_n but_o yourself_o only_o and_o whether_o every_o one_o in_o that_o church_n know_v himself_o only_o and_o no_o more_o if_o you_o do_v not_o know_v any_o of_o they_o what_o society_n can_v you_o have_v among_o you_o what_o government_n what_o form_n of_o a_o church_n if_o you_o do_v know_v any_o i_o desire_v to_o hear_v how_o we_o find_v not_o your_o name_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o book_n of_o life_n be_v not_o print_v with_o the_o gospel_n 10.14_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o john_n 10.14_o we_o read_v there_o that_o our_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o that_o our_o great_a pastor_n know_v his_o sheep_n that_o you_o can_v do_v it_o that_o you_o can_v number_v all_o his_o sheep_n that_o you_o can_v point_v they_o out_o we_o read_v not_o i_o pray_v you_o how_o come_v you_o to_o know_v the_o secret_a be_v it_o by_o exterior_a profession_n that_o serve_v not_o they_o may_v dissemble_v and_o which_o be_v worse_o for_o you_o none_o profess_a your_o religion_n for_o 900_o year_n together_o and_o therefore_o by_o profession_n you_o know_v none_o in_o all_o that_o tyme._n neither_o will_v a_o unfeigned_a profession_n have_v serve_v the_o turn_n for_o every_o one_o that_o persuade_v himself_o that_o he_o believe_v be_v not_o constant_a in_o the_o faith_n nor_o predestinate_a what_o then_o be_v the_o certain_a mark_n whereby_o you_o know_v your_o invisible_a brethren_n that_o we_o may_v know_v they_o too_o or_o do_v you_o not_o indeed_o know_v they_o book_n remember_v what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o first_o book_n if_o you_o know_v they_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o mark_n the_o mark_n of_o a_o predestinate_v protestant_n and_o bring_v we_o one_o example_n any_o time_n for_o 900._o year_n before_o luther_n of_o such_o a_o man_n a_o example_n out_o of_o question_n a_o manifest_a example_n if_o you_o do_v not_o know_v they_o you_o can_v confer_v with_o they_o in_o your_o difficulty_n you_o can_v help_v they_o in_o their_o necessity_n you_o can_v meet_v in_o council_n as_o the_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n do_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n you_o can_v have_v the_o face_n nor_o the_o government_n of_o a_o church_n 133._o i_o must_v examine_v further_o by_o your_o leave_n in_o your_o catholic_a church_n of_o predestinate_a be_v there_o order_n or_o confusion_n be_v there_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n and_o bysshop_n or_o no_o bysshop_n no_o pastor_n no_o doctor_n be_v there_o a_o hierarchy_n or_o not_o be_v the_o preacher_n and_o superintendent_o see_v and_o hear_v or_o how_o be_v the_o thing_n do_v the_o reason_n of_o my_o demand_n or_o doubt_n be_v because_o this_o catholic_a church_n of_o you_o be_v invisible_a and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v that_o no_o man_n can_v see_v the_o preacher_n otherwise_o many_o in_o the_o company_n may_v see_v he_o if_o not_o all_o and_o so_o he_o be_v visible_a he_o also_o may_v see_v they_o he_o preach_v unto_o and_o so_o they_o be_v visible_a too_o and_o consequent_o the_o whole_a company_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v visible_a not_o invisible_a 114._o it_o may_v seem_v by_o your_o talk_n that_o this_o holy_a congregation_n of_o you_o have_v great_a ear_n and_o no_o eye_n for_o if_o they_o have_v eye_n they_o may_v then_o see_v the_o minister_n that_o instruct_v they_o they_o may_v see_v their_o superintendent_o or_o if_o they_o can_v hear_v and_o not_o see_v these_o minister_n their_o ear_n reach_v a_o great_a deal_n further_o than_o their_o eye_n but_o this_o will_v not_o content_v i_o neither_o if_o you_o grant_v it_o for_o that_o which_o may_v be_v hear_v make_v a_o noise_n and_o by_o the_o noise_n discover_v itself_o if_o therefore_o your_o predestinate_v preacher_n have_v make_v a_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n the_o christian_n or_o papist_n live_v with_o they_o shall_v have_v hear_v it_o though_o they_o can_v not_o see_v those_o invisible_a man_n and_o this_o at_o least_o will_v be_v find_v on_o record_n as_o other_o wonder_n be_v to_o wit_n that_o in_o all_o christian_a country_n there_o be_v a_o protestant_a noise_n and_o sermon_n every_o where_o in_o every_o nation_n but_o no_o preacher_n see_v this_o will_v have_v be_v find_v in_o the_o chronicle_n of_o all_o country_n and_o some_o will_v have_v be_v so_o curiouse_a as_o to_o have_v note_v the_o point_n of_o the_o sermon_n and_o set_v down_o the_o doctrine_n but_o
have_v always_o god_n spirit_n in_o her_o hart_n and_o god_n word_n in_o her_o mouth_n which_o have_v convert_v nation_n condemn_v heresy_n assemble_v council_n maintain_v order_n administer_v sacrament_n and_o breed_v saint_n to_o the_o church_n describe_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o visible_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n 119._o it_o may_v be_v that_o yourself_o by_o this_o time_n be_v weary_a of_o your_o own_o invention_n to_o the_o end_n therefore_o i_o may_v give_v you_o scope_n to_o interpret_v yourself_o better_o than_o you_o have_v do_v hitherto_o i_o will_v ask_v a_o question_n or_o two_o more_o and_o make_v and_o end_n either_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n to_o follow_v the_o instruction_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n or_o no_o if_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a than_o god_n have_v not_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o instruction_n for_o without_o a_o preacher_n man_n can_v believe_v as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o oft_o from_o s._n paul_n if_o it_o be_v sufficient_a then_o leave_v we_o to_o follow_v this_o instruction_n to_o be_v direct_v by_o this_o church_n we_o have_v that_o we_o look_v for_o i_o have_v prove_v heretofore_o that_o the_o church_n have_v god_n word_n ever_o in_o her_o mouth_n and_o that_o she_o deliver_v true_a doctrine_n without_o error_n fundamental_a or_o other_o i_o demand_v now_o whether_o the_o predestinate_a do_v believe_v this_o doctrine_n this_o religion_n thus_o perpetuallie_o teach_v or_o not_o if_o they_o do_v not_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o true_a religion_n they_o be_v not_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n for_o his_o sheep_n do_v hear_v his_o voice_n 10._o io._n 10._o they_o may_v be_v your_o predecessor_n they_o be_v not_o we_o they_o be_v saint_n of_o your_o make_n but_o not_o god_n elect_v if_o they_o do_v than_o this_o visible_a church_n and_o god_n predestinate_a be_v all_o of_o one_o religion_n one_o faith_n one_o body_n mystical_a they_o all_o make_v one_o church_n speak_v plain_o man_n the_o religion_n which_o god_n make_v the_o church_n to_o profess_v always_o be_v it_o true_a or_o false_a if_o false_a how_o be_v it_o god_n instruction_n you_o have_v profit_v sure_o exceed_o by_o your_o spirit_n if_o now_o you_o tax_v god_n with_o false_a doctrine_n if_o it_o be_v true_a we_o may_v follow_v it_o we_o must_v follow_v it_o the_o predestinate_v people_n be_v they_o of_o this_o religion_n thus_o profess_v or_o be_v they_o of_o a_o other_o if_o of_o a_o other_o 16._o gal._n 1._o ●_o cor._n 16._o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o they_o anathema_n anathema_n if_o they_o be_v of_o this_o religion_n all_o be_v well_o 120._o to_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v one_o and_o visible_a and_o that_o the_o predestinate_a be_v in_o it_o have_v be_v the_o sense_n and_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o catholic_a world_n who_o have_v all_o hope_a to_o be_v save_v in_o this_o church_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n it_o have_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o acknowledge_v themselves_o child_n of_o it_o and_o be_v direct_v by_o it_o it_o have_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o predestinate_a themselves_o who_o do_v here_o believe_v as_o we_o do_v and_o god_n have_v by_o miracle_n and_o other_o way_n manifest_v their_o sanctity_n unto_o the_o world_n and_o final_o it_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o can_v err_v in_o such_o a_o point_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v larglie_o and_o you_o in_o your_o ground_n shall_v confess_v because_o the_o thing_n be_v fundamental_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o extraordinary_a stupidity_n or_o malice_n or_o both_o to_o stagger_v in_o it_o the_o seven_o chapter_n two_o other_o argument_n be_v answer_v 121._o if_o any_o of_o your_o argument_n shall_v escape_v untouched_a you_o will_v brag_v of_o their_o streingth_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o glad_a i_o have_v overtake_v other_o two_o before_o they_o get_v out_o of_o my_o memory_n the_o first_o be_v rainolds_n whittak_n rainolds_n that_o which_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o one_o may_v happen_v to_o all_o or_o to_o every_o one_o but_o to_o err_v may_v happen_v to_o any_o church_n add_v for_o ought_v you_o know_v for_o thus_o it_o do_v happen_v to_o the_o church_n of_o thiatira_n corinth_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o it_o may_v happen_v to_o every_o one_o or_o to_o all_o and_o so_o all_o at_o once_o may_v err_v thus_o you_o i_o have_v some_o cause_n to_o think_v you_o have_v a_o wide_a mouth_n suppose_v you_o can_v thrust_v ā_o egg_n into_o it_o a_o clown_n there_o may_v dispute_v in_o your_o form_n and_o mood_n thus_o that_o which_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o one_o of_o the_o egg_n in_o your_o parish_n may_v happen_v to_o all_o or_o to_o every_o one_o but_o to_o be_v thrust_v into_o your_o mouth_n at_o once_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o one_o of_o those_o egg_n therefore_o it_o may_v happen_v to_o they_o all_o and_o then_o your_o mouth_n will_v be_v stop_v now_o if_o one_o mouthful_a be_v not_o enough_o for_o your_o dinner_n you_o may_v fall_v next_o to_o the_o meat_n and_o eat_v it_o all_o every_o bit_n for_o that_o which_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o bit_n may_v happen_v to_o every_o bit_n the_o clown_n your_o scholar_n will_v say_v and_o afterwards_o at_o the_o same_o meal_n you_o may_v drink_v all_o the_o drink_n every_o cupful_a every_o drop_n 122._o suppose_v all_o the_o man_n in_o england_n shall_v cast_v the_o dice_n for_o a_o thousand_o pound_n with_o these_o condition_n that_o the_o first_o which_o throw_v twelve_o with_o two_o die_n shall_v have_v it_o and_o if_o none_o throw_v twelve_o the_o money_n shall_v be_v you_o to_o see_v fair_a play_n and_o to_o do_v you_o all_o the_o favour_n we_o can_v we_o will_v suppose_v the_o dice_n to_o be_v just_a and_o no_o trick_n use_v at_o all_o the_o first_o may_v throw_v ames_o ace_n i_o suppose_v the_o least_o for_o your_o good_a but_o it_o be_v five_o to_o one_o he_o will_v not_o yet_o admit_v he_o do_v it_o be_v five_o to_o one_o the_o second_o do_v not_o yet_o admit_v his_o cast_n be_v ames_o ace_n too_o for_o what_o chance_n may_v happen_v to_o the_o other_o may_v happen_v to_o he_o thus_o i_o will_v run_v on_o till_o i_o come_v to_o twenty_o and_o sure_o it_o be_v much_o that_o twenty_o one_o after_o another_o shall_v have_v the_o same_o cast_n and_o the_o die_n exact_o just_a it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o it_o will_v hold_v on_o so_o to_o a_o hundred_o yet_o what_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o one_o may_v happen_v say_v you_o to_o every_o one_o it_o be_v incredible_a it_o shall_v go_v on_o in_o the_o same_o chance_n to_o a_o thousand_o yet_o in_o your_o logic_n this_o guggion_n must_v be_v swallow_v after_o his_o fellow_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v run_v through_o they_o all_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o then_o fortune_n will_v be_v constant_a and_o contingencie_n will_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o neeessity_n which_o no_o man_n will_v say_v who_o know_v what_o he_o say_v yet_o this_o must_v down_o your_o throat_n too_o for_o what_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o one_o may_v happen_v to_o every_o one_o that_o so_o in_o the_o end_n you_o may_v get_v to_o yourself_o the_o thousand_o pound_n the_o like_a may_v happen_v if_o all_o the_o man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n shall_v cast_v the_o dice_n and_o shall_v have_v do_v so_o ever_o since_o die_n be_v first_o invent_v because_o what_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o one_o may_v as_o you_o say_v happen_v to_o every_o one_o and_o when_o each_o have_v throw_v he_o may_v die_v before_o you_o and_o consequent_o all_o may_v do_v so_o in_o your_o principle_n so_o you_o shall_v be_v the_o only_a man_n a_o live_v and_o have_v all_o their_o money_n too_o and_o thus_o much_o to_o let_v you_o see_v the_o weak_a form_n of_o your_o argument_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v one_o of_o the_o main_a foundation_n where_o on_o your_o man_n do_v build_v their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o fallibility_n of_o god_n church_n 123._o now_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o argument_n i_o answer_v that_o allmighiie_n god_n be_v infinite_a and_o therefore_o none_o can_v hinder_v his_o design_n or_o make_v frustrate_a his_o intention_n wherefore_o since_o he_o have_v decree_v to_o keep_v always_o to_o the_o world_n end_n a_o church_n on_o earth_n infallible_a in_o doctrine_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n his_o providence_n will_v effect_v it_o and_o make_v it_o persevere_v in_o what_o person_n and_o what_o place_n he_o please_v we_o have_v no_o revelation_n thath_fw-mi the_o true_a faith_n shall_v persevere_v always_o in_o france_n or_o in_o
nimirum_fw-la qui_fw-la voto_fw-la propositum_fw-la illum_fw-la caelestem_fw-la panem_fw-la edentes_fw-la fide_fw-la viva_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la dilectionem_fw-la operatur_fw-la fructum_fw-la eius_fw-la &_o utilitatem_fw-la sentiunt_fw-la tertios_fw-la porrò_fw-la sacramentaliter_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o spiritvaliter_fw-la conc._n trid._n sess_v 13_o cap._n 8._o if_o you_o understand_v this_o as_o it_o be_v easy_a you_o will_v understand_v many_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n which_o do_v concern_v the_o communion_n dupliciter_fw-la caro_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la vel_fw-la spiritvalis_fw-la illa_fw-la atque_fw-la divina_fw-la de_fw-la qua_fw-la ipse_fw-la dixi_fw-la caro_fw-la mea_fw-la verè_fw-la est_fw-la cibus_fw-la existendi_fw-la eadem_fw-la substantia_fw-la comparata_fw-la ad_fw-la diversos_fw-la modos_fw-la existendi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la meus_fw-la verè_fw-la est_fw-la potus_fw-la well_fw-mi caro_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la qua_fw-la crucifixa_fw-la est_fw-la qai_fw-fr militis_fw-la effusus_fw-la est_fw-la lancea_fw-la juxta_fw-la hanc_fw-la divisionem_fw-la &_o in_o sanctis_fw-la eius_fw-la diversitas_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la &_o carnis_fw-la accipitur_fw-la ut_fw-la alia_fw-la sit_fw-la caro_fw-la quae_fw-la visura_fw-la est_fw-la salutare_fw-la dei_fw-la alia_fw-la caro_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la quae_fw-la regnum_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-fr qu●ant_fw-la possidere_fw-la s._n hieron_n comment_fw-fr in_o cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la ephes_n learn_v this_o all_o well_o and_o when_o you_o read_v s._n augustine_n it_o will_v do_v you_o good_a flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 1._o cor._n 15._o v._n 50._o you_o will_v think_v this_o to_o be_v against_o the_o article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n read_v the_o whole_a chapter_n and_o mark_v the_o apostle_n distinction_n of_o a_o body_n into_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o this_o spiritual_a body_n in_o substance_n be_v the_o same_o body_n which_o here_o nature_n frame_v consist_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o this_o you_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n see_v card._n peron_n his_o treatise_n of_o the_o eucharist_n paris_n 1622._o come_v to_o the_o communicants_a mouth_n yea_o some_o time_n he_o be_v receive_v unworthilie_o as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o s._n paul_n 11._o 1._o cor._n 11._o but_o those_o receiver_n have_v not_o the_o spiritual_a effect_n and_o conjunction_n they_o receive_v the_o body_n into_o their_o body_n they_o receive_v not_o grace_n into_o their_o soul_n from_o this_o body_n because_o they_o receive_v it_o unworthilie_o and_o not_o as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n a_o thing_n most_o holy_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o union_n to_o the_o divine_a person_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v 72._o as_o for_o sign_n some_o do_v signify_v thing_n present_a some_o thing_n absent_a the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o a_o sign_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n present_a so_o the_o form_n do_v signify_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o so_o the_o species_n under_o these_o word_n do_v signify_v to_o good_a christian_n to_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n 12._o s._n aug._n enarrat_fw-la ps_n 3._o &_o cont_n adimant_n c._n 12._o this_o mystery_n be_v also_o a_o representation_n of_o the_o bloody_a passion_n as_o i_o say_v before_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n yet_o a_o sacrifice_n too_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o father_n substance_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v a_o divine_a person_n too_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v have_v diverse_a attribute_n one_o not_o exclude_v another_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o sign_n a_o representation_n a_o oblation_n a_o sacrifice_n and_o in_o it_o be_v real_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n yea_o christ_n himself_o be_v there_o all_o these_o do_v consist_v one_o do_v not_o exclude_v the_o other_o 73._o last_o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n i_o wish_v you_o to_o reflect_v that_o oppose_v the_o mass_n as_o you_o do_v you_o oppose_v all_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o be_v before_o luther_n this_o i_o will_v declare_v brief_o india_n in_o antioch_n alexandria_n jerusalem_n aethiopia_n chaldaea_n east_n india_n first_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o all_o know_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n do_v frequent_v the_o mass_n in_o all_o europe_n in_o all_o part_n of_o asia_n and_o africa_n where_o any_o christian_n be_v the_o christian_n in_o the_o part_n late_o discover_v all_o be_v find_v to_o frequent_v the_o mass_n also_o the_o nestorian_n and_o eutichian_o in_o egypt_n the_o russian_n muscovite_n and_o grecian_n all_o frequent_a the_o mass_n which_o be_v a_o evident_a argument_n they_o have_v it_o by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n sacrifice_n both_o those_o who_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o those_o who_o know_v he_o but_o obay_v he_o not_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mass_n or_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n who_o teach_v the_o world_n for_o such_o uniformity_n and_o consent_n of_o so_o many_o nation_n so_o disperse_v and_o some_o to_o the_o rest_n whole_o unknown_a in_o so_o dark_a a_o mystery_n as_o this_o be_v can_v not_o be_v from_o any_o natural_a cause_n secondlie_o all_o these_o church_n that_o be_v all_o the_o know_a church_n in_o the_o world_n do_v believe_v they_o be_v thus_o to_o do_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o among_o these_o the_o true_a church_n be_v one_o because_o that_o be_v ever_o visible_a by_o her_o profession_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o frequent_v of_o mass_n be_v approve_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 6_o s._n aug._n l._n 4._o the_o bapt_a c._n 6_o and_o consequent_o it_o can_v be_v a_o ertour_n thirdlie_o that_o custom_n which_o man_n even_o then_o look_v upward_o do_v not_o see_v institute_v by_o those_o which_o be_v late_a than_o the_o apostle_n be_v well_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n say_v s._n augustine_n but_o all_o these_o church_n infinite_a eye_n look_v upward_o can_v not_o see_v the_o institution_n of_o unbloodie_a sacrifice_n or_o mass_n late_a than_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v manifest_a because_o they_o all_o receive_v it_o as_o divine_a and_o apostolical_a therefore_o by_o s._n augustine_n rule_n it_o be_v well_o believe_v so_o to_o be_v 74._o for_o the_o late_a age_n you_o easy_o admit_v they_o go_v to_o mass_n and_o that_o they_o believe_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o primitive_a church_n you_o be_v yet_o some_o what_o doubtful_a it_o seem_v what_o to_o do_v 18._o missa_fw-la abominatio_fw-la in_o calice_n aureo_fw-la propin●●a_fw-la omnes_fw-la reges_fw-la terra_fw-la &_o populos_fw-la a_o summo_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la novissimum_fw-la sic_fw-la inebriavit_fw-la ut_fw-la proram_fw-la &_o puppim_fw-la sva_fw-la salutis_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la una_fw-la voragine_fw-la statuerint_fw-la cal._n 4._o inst_z c._n 18._o let_v i_o help_v you_o forward_o to_o resolve_v upon_o the_o truth_n that_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o we_o call_v the_o mass_n be_v frequent_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n i_o prove_v first_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_a church_n ever_o since_o and_o by_o their_o liturgy_n which_o as_o all_o these_o church_n do_v testify_v be_v deliver_v they_o from_o the_o church_n primitive_a among_o these_o have_v be_v infinite_a wise_a man_n and_o great_a scholar_n as_o in_o another_o place_n i_o do_v argue_v they_o have_v better_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n than_o we_o have_v be_v near_a and_o some_o of_o they_o immediate_a the_o matter_n as_o frequentation_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o their_o exterior_a profession_n of_o their_o faith_n touch_v these_o thing_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o among_o these_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o allmightie_a god_n the_o testimony_n of_o all_o these_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n go_v to_o mass_n or_o no_o testimony_n of_o man_n be_v sufficient_a in_o any_o cause_n 75._o i_o go_v near_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o seven_o age_n live_v isidorus_n 18._o s._n isid_n l._n 1._o offic._n c._n 15._o plura_fw-la c._n 18._o bisshoppe_n of_o civil_a and_o a_o saint_n and_o he_o say_v the_o order_n of_o mass_n or_o prayer_n whereby_o sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o god_n be_v consecrate_v be_v first_o institute_v by_o s._n peter_n the_o celebration_n whereof_o say_v he_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v perform_v after_o one_o and_o the_o same_o manner_n all_o this_o world_n sure_o have_v mean_n to_o know_v what_o their_o father_n in_o the_o age_n before_o have_v do_v better_a than_o we_o they_o have_v their_o book_n they_o have_v converse_v with_o many_o of_o they_o let_v we_o ascend_v in_o
time_n in_o this_o world_n be_v but_o short_a the_o sun_n run_v it_o over_o with_o infinite_a speed_n and_o the_o post_n of_o nature_n be_v on_o the_o way_n how_o near_a god_n only_o know_v to_o give_v we_o notice_n of_o a_o dissolution_n wherein_o each_o of_o we_o be_v as_o it_o be_v divide_v one_o half_o be_v render_v to_o the_o earth_n to_o feed_v worm_n the_o other_o carry_v away_o to_o the_o tribunal_n to_o hear_v a_o sentence_n of_o eternity_n happy_a be_v those_o who_o prize_v god_n solid_o above_o all_o and_o adhere_v to_o he_o as_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a take_v this_o journey_n with_o full_a resignation_n of_o their_o spirit_n and_o die_v in_o the_o church_n arm_n i_o send_v you_o this_o book_n desire_v you_o to_o peruse_v it_o i_o will_v have_v willing_o come_v myself_o to_o have_v take_v part_n with_o you_o but_o employment_n tie●_n i_o here_o in_o my_o youth_n when_o i_o have_v lose_v my_o best_a friend_n who_o soul_n rest_n in_o peace_n i_o lose_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o my_o time_n and_o it_o seem_v almighty_a god_n have_v so_o dispose_v of_o i_o that_o i_o must_v now_o repair_v the_o loss_n if_o you_o find_v the_o thing_n less_o account_n than_o you_o may_v have_v expect_v you_o know●_n my_o excuse_n when_o two_o employment_n do_v meet●_n in_o a_o narrow_a understanding_n and_o that_o but_o poor_o lodge_v both_o do_v suffer_v those_o who_o labour_v in_o repair_v the_o wall_n of_o jerusalem_n whilst_o they_o do_v work_v with_o one_o hand_n be_v force_v in_o the_o other_o to_o take_v a_o sword_n i_o fight_v but_o with_o one_o hand_n the_o fault_n and_o imperfection_n here_o be_v i_o in_o the_o resolution_n the_o catholic_a world_n do_v agree_v and_o you_o have_v the_o prayer_n of_o they_o all_o as_o long_o as_o you_o keep_v yourselves_o in_o their_o communion_n you_o have_v also_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n reach_v thither_o and_o our_o saviour_n there_o do_v mediate_v unto_o his_o father_n in_o your_o behalf_n you_o have_v god_n a_o advocate_n unto_o god_n the_o son_n to_o the_o father_n do_v not_o fear_v but_o serve_v he_o careful_o and_o he_o will_v multiply_v his_o blessing_n on_o you_o and_o if_o we_o spend_v the_o few_o day_n of_o our_o peregrination_n well_o will_v bring_v we_o all_o in_o the_o end_n in_o to_o our_o country_n heaven_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v to_o the_o company_n of_o many_o thousand_o of_o angel_n where_o there_o be_v perpetual_a jubilee_n where_o god_n be_v all_o in_o all_o then_o death_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o nor_o mourn_a nor_o sorrow_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o hunger_n nor_o thirst_n neither_o shall_v the_o su●ne_a fall_n upon_o you_o nor_o any_o heat_n and_o god_n w●l_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o your_o eye_n fare_v ●ou_fw-fr well_o and_o let_v we_o resign_v ourselves_o whole_o to_o the_o bless_a will_n of_o god_n and_o pray_v each_o fo●_n other_o that_o we_o may_v be_v save_v you_o by_o manifold_a obligation_n f._n e._n the_o question_n where_o a_o man_n be_v to_o seek_v instruction_n in_o matte●_n of_o religion_n the_o answer_n in_o the_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n this_o resolu●●on_n be_v here_o declare_v in_o three_o proposition_n 1._o th●_n catholic_a church_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o all_o ●●uth_n the_o three_o book_n 2._o and_o be_v that_o which_o be_v in_o comm●●ion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n the_o second_o book_n 3._o not_o the_o company_n of_o protestant_n the_o first_o book_n the_o bo●ke_n be_v so_o little_a it_o need_v not_o a_o index_n in_o place_n of_o o●e_n take_v this_o direction_n god_n li●_n 2._o cap._n 4._o incarnation_n of_o the_o second_o person_n ibid_fw-la his_o church_n foretell_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o raise_v and_o propagate_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 5._o visibile_fw-la lib._n 2._o ca._n 1._o &_o lib_n 3._o ca._n 1._o 2._o 6._o continue_a till_o now_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o &_o 3_o th●_n holy_a ghost_n assist_v in_o it_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o to_o all_o truth_n 2._o fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a c._n 3._o the_o write_a doctrine_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o the_o unwritten_a ●●b_fw-la 4._o cap._n 10._o particular_a point_n of_o her_o doctrine_n prove_v by_o text_n of_o scripture_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 6._o her_o i●teriour_n sanctity_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 5._o exterior_a act_n of_o di●ine_a worship_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 9_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o mass_n cap._n 8._o flesh_n and_o blood_n real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n cap._n 6._o and_o by_o antiquity_n so_o believe_v cap._n 7._o in_o the_o church_n priest_n and_o a_o chief_a pastor_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 6._o s._n peter_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 4._o ca._n 1._o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n and_o above_o other_o bishop_n cap._n 2._o precedent_n in_o general_a counsel_n cap._n 3._o counsel_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 3._o &_o 7._o assist_v in_o propose_v lib._n 3._o c._n 2._o 3_o 4._o &_o lib_n 4_o cap._n 10._o who_o a_o catholic_a lib._n 2._o c._n 6._o and_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o resolution_n of_o faith_n ibid._n and._n li._n 3._o cap._n 4._o &_o 5._o answer_v to_o objection_n make_v against_o universality_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o sanctity_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 5._o visibilitie_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6._o succession_n and_o unity_n lib._n 2._o ca._n 7._o &_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o infallibility_n lib._n 3._o cap_n 5._o &_o 7._o and_o against_o our_o doctrine_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 4._o &_o 5._o and_o lib._n 4._o throughout_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v their_o religion_n by_o scripture_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 4._o 5._o 6._o nor_o by_o antiquity_n cap._n 3._o they_o shall_v render_v account_n of_o predecessor_n agree_v in_o all_o point_n with_o they_o lib._n 3._o c._n 4._o but_o can_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o the_o waldense_n neither_o be_v protestant_n nor_o have_v continual_a succession_n of_o their_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o the_o young_a reader_n may_v omit_v the_o ●_o 5._o and_o 6._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n to_o he_o that_o have_v minister_v the_o occasion_n of_o this_o book_n to_o one_o of_o the_o two_o paper_n which_o you_o have_v from_o i_o long_o ago_o you_o have_v shape_v as_o it_o seem_v a_o kind_n of_o answer_n yet_o not_o a_o answer_n neither_o for_o you_o send_v he_o that_o will_v have_v one_o to_o look_v it_o in_o other_o man_n that_o be_v in_o print_n for_o my_o part_n i_o be_v not_o willing_a at_o the_o sight_n of_o you_o which_o i_o espy_v by_o mere_a chance_n and_o never_o see_v but_o once_o to_o be_v make_v a_o april_n fool_n and_o therefore_o will_v not_o be_v so_o far_o at_o your_o command_n yet_o to_o declare_v that_o i_o be_v not_o satisfy_v presume_v the_o chief_a question_n out_o of_o which_o the_o rest_n be_v easy_o resolve_v and_o dispute_v it_o more_o at_o large_a put_v down_o the_o conclusion_n together_o with_o their_o ground_n and_o maintain_v they_o against_o that_o which_o yourself_o or_o your_o abettor_n have_v object_v i_o endeavour_v to_o do_v this_o brief_o but_o it_o so_o fare_v with_o i_o in_o this_o intellectual_a business_n as_o it_o do_v with_o such_o as_o breed_v the_o child_n in_o the_o nativity_n be_v much_o big_a than_o at_o the_o conception_n the_o matter_n i_o speak_v of_o here_o have_v a_o inward_a inclination_n to_o dilate_v itself_o and_o whilst_o i_o be_v write_v the_o discourse_n prove_v a_o book_n where_o upon_o be_v withal_o desirous_a to_o impart_v it_o to_o my_o friend_n i_o determine_v to_o multiply_v my_o copy_n by_o the_o print_n when_o i_o can_v spare_v money_n to_o discharge_v it_o as_o i_o be_v expect_v that_o opportunity_n another_o occasion_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o late_a persecution_n solicit_v i_o to_o let_v it_o without_o more_o delay_n come_v abroad_o and_o i_o have_v yield_v thereunto_o though_o not_o without_o diffitcultie_n i_o will_v not_o address_v the_o thing_n particular_o against_o you_o partly_o because_o i_o dispute_v also_o against_o other_o with_o who_o i_o have_v exchange_v some_o paper_n as_o i_o do_v with_o you_o and_o be_o willing_a if_o it_o may_v be_v to_o be_v hear_v where_o they_o be_v partly_o because_o your_o discourse_n be_v not_o a_o direct_a answer_n to_o that_o i_o send_v and_o a_o post_a direction_n of_o half_a a_o sheet_n of_o paper_n have_v be_v as_o much_o as_o in_o way_n of_o reply_n it_o can_v deserve_v from_o i_o or_o any_o other_o you_o have_v handle_v the_o matter_n so_o that_o indeed_o i_o doubed_a whether_o i_o be_v the_o man_n you_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n there_o put_v down_o
time_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n until_o this_o day_n it_o be_v by_o long_a experience_n very_o manifest_a ever_o since_o luther_n and_o caluin_n do_v begin_v to_o spread_v their_o doctrine_n it_o have_v be_v demand_v and_o your_o man_n have_v endeavour_v to_o make_v answer_n have_v examine_v to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n all_o book_n and_o monument_n that_o be_v extant_a and_o yet_o after_o infinite_a inquisition_n no_o such_o evidence_n can_v be_v find_v sometime_o indeed_o you_o name_v some_o man_n of_o diverse_a sect_n and_o religion_n in_o which_o kind_a illyricus_n have_v labour_v hard_o but_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o thing_n expect_v that_o be_v to_o prove_v they_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n there_o he_o leave_v you_o whereas_o it_o be_v this_o only_o which_o be_v expect_v from_o a_o scholar_n for_o every_o prate_a fellow_n can_v affirm_v what_o he_o listen_v it_o be_v not_o hard_o for_o a_o unknown_a upstart_n to_o lay_v claim_n to_o a_o very_a noble_a petegree_n and_o great_a dominion_n but_o without_o evidence_n he_o will_v not_o be_v admit_v and_o believe_v it_o be_v evidence_n that_o we_o look_v for_o show_v the_o proof_n of_o that_o you_o say_v 4._o be_v urge_v again_o and_o again_o with_o this_o you_o name_n in_o fine_a the_o poor_a beggar_n of_o lion_n of_o waldo_n their_o author_n call_v waldenses_n wherein_o you_o do_v mere_o spend_v time_n and_o cozen_v simple_a people_n you_o know_v that_o your_o own_o man_n reject_v their_o communion_n and_o it_o have_v be_v tell_v you_o oft_o apol._n protest_v apol._n they_o agree_v not_o with_o you_o the_o matter_n of_o your_o difference_n have_v be_v name_v and_o be_v note_v in_o your_o own_o author_n and_o the_o thing_n i_o demand_v be_v your_o proof_n 5._o see_v prot._n apol._n trac_fw-la 2._o c._n 2._o sec_fw-la 3_o &_o r._n chalced_a de_fw-fr essent_fw-la prot_n relig_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 5._o your_o evidence_n where_o be_v it_o where_o be_v your_o proof_n that_o the_o waldense_n who_o live_v before_o luther_n for_o of_o they_o only_o i_o inquire_v be_v of_o the_o religion_n now_o currant_n among_o you_o and_o where_o be_v the_o catalogue_n of_o their_o continual_a succession_n ever_o since_o the_o apostl'es_n time_n and_o evidence_n of_o their_o communion_n with_o nation_n and_o of_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o that_o religion_n in_o all_o the_o world_n these_o thing_n i_o do_v expect_v this_o catalogue_n i_o must_v see_v or_o the_o demand_n of_o continual_a succession_n will_v rest_v ever_o unsatisfied_a as_o it_o have_v do_v hitherto_o 5._o those_o man_n dissent_v from_o you_o in_o the_o point_n of_o ibid._n of_o errant_a in_o eo_fw-la quòd_fw-la non_fw-la credunt_fw-la solam_fw-la fidem_fw-la absque_fw-la operibus_fw-la iustificare_fw-la lutherus_n in_o colloq_fw-la germ._n c._n the_o suerm_n coc._n t._n 1._o l._n 8._o a._n 4._o de_fw-fr imputata_fw-la iustitia_fw-la nihil_fw-la norunt_fw-la luth._o ibid._n justification_n 6._o vide_fw-la r._n chal._n de_fw-fr essen_v rel_n prot_n c._n 6._o which_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o protestancie_n and_o hold_v the_o real_a 244._o real_a confess_v bohem._n a._n 13._o and_o caluin_n say_v of_o their_o confession_n formulam_fw-la confessionis_fw-la amplecti_fw-la quae_fw-la sine_fw-la discrimine_fw-la in_fw-la unum_fw-la fasciculum_fw-la damnationis_fw-la omnes_fw-la in_o voluit_fw-la qui_fw-la pracisè_fw-la non_fw-la fat●ntur_fw-la panem_fw-la esse_fw-la prasentissimè_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la hic_fw-la recitamus_fw-la eorum_fw-la verba_fw-la and_o fas_fw-la sit_fw-la christiano_n homini_fw-la videritis_fw-la nos_fw-la certè_fw-la non_fw-la putamus_fw-la epist_n 244._o presence_n in_o our_o sense_n wherefore_o they_o be_v not_o you_o second_o they_o hold_v sundry_a damnable_a opinion_n which_o you_o dare_v not_o approve_v as_o that_o he_o which_o be_v in_o mortal_a sin_n 7._o illyric_n in_o catal._n test_n de_fw-fr wald_n ex_fw-la syl._n &_o rain_n itenque_n anto._n &_o guid._n de_fw-fr wal._n dogm_n aeneas_n sylu._n hist_o bohem._n luxemb_n in_o paup_n de_fw-fr ludg._n 1._o tim._n 4._o 1._o cor._n 7._o fall_v out_o of_o all_o dignity_n thereby_o whether_o it_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v that_o lie_v man_n and_o woman_n may_v eonsecrate_v and_o preach_v that_o every_o good_a layman_n be_v a_o priest_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v lay_v man_n that_o clergy_n man_n shall_v have_v no_o possession_n they_o condemn_v marriage_n a_o manifest_a heresy_n judgement_n to_o blood_n and_o oath_n three_o your_o own_o man_n refuse_v their_o communion_n as_o you_o know_v by_o 273._o by_o cam._n de_fw-fr eccl._n in_o bohem._n etc._n etc._n p._n 273._o camerarius_fw-la 124._o camerarius_fw-la morg._n tract_n de_fw-fr eccl._n p._n 79._o and_o 124._o morgernstern_n 278._o morgernstern_n calu._n ep._n 278._o caluin_n 152._o caluin_n melanc_fw-fr in_o consilijs_fw-la par_fw-fr 2._o pag._n 152._o melancthon_n cit_fw-la melancthon_n schlus_n catal._n tom_n 3._o p._n 188._o and_o see_v jewel_n pantaleon_n and_o osiander_n of_o the_o albigense_n cite_v prot_n apol._n sec._n cit_fw-la schlusselburg_n and_o other_o and_o charge_v they_o with_o maintain_v obstinate_o gross_a error_n and_o heresy_n four_o they_o have_v no_o hierarchy_n have_v among_o they_o no_o bishop_n suprà_fw-la fox_n act_n mon_fw-fr p._n 628._o sim._n voyon_n cata._n p._n 132_o osiand_n epitome_n and_o their_o own_o tenet_n suprà_fw-la nor_o priest_n but_o all_o be_v lie_v people_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n five_o waldo_n a_o merchant_n of_o lion_n and_o a_o unlern_v lay_v man_n who_o live_v a_o 1170._o be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a of_o that_o sect_n so_o that_o they_o fail_v in_o the_o point_n of_o antiquity_n and_o continual_a succession_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n whereunto_o you_o be_v to_o answer_v and_o will_v never_o do_v till_o you_o put_v down_o some_o in_o every_o age_n and_o bring_v unquestionable_a evidence_n for_o they_o which_o will_v never_o be_v 6._o if_o notwithstanding_o the_o contrary_a judgement_n of_o your_o man_n you_o will_v join_v to_o their_o church_n and_o maintain_v the_o succession_n of_o your_o church_n by_o they_o 6._o heb._n 5._o v._o 4._o rom._n 10._o v._n 15._o confess_v bohem._n a._n 13._o caluinianos_n waldensium_fw-la confessionem_fw-la d●pravasse_fw-la ostendit_fw-la conrade_n schlussel_n theol._n calu._n li._n 2._o art_n 6._o who_o can_v not_o ordain_v you_o priest_n and_o bishop_n have_v themselves_o none_o nor_o teach_v be_v themselves_o unsent_a you_o must_v prove_v cleerele_n first_o that_o they_o have_v lawful_a vocation_n and_o ordination_n second_o that_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o foresaid_a error_n and_o heresy_n or_o you_o must_v admit_v that_o you_o hold_v they_o also_o three_o that_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o you_o in_o all_o other_o point_n particular_o descend_v to_o each_o as_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n the_o bohemian_a confession_n do_v say_v they_o do_v not_o but_o that_o they_o understand_v the_o word_n proper_o as_o we_o do_v 40._o luth._o supra_fw-la cit_fw-la r._n chalc._o sup_v cit_fw-la haud_fw-la scio_fw-la a_o usquam_fw-la diu_fw-la publicè_fw-la svam_fw-la fidem_fw-la sint_fw-la prosessi_fw-it etc._n etc._n praeterquam_fw-la in_o bohemia_n &_o in_o quadam_fw-la valle_o in_fw-la radicibus_fw-la alpium_fw-la illyr_n de_fw-fr waldens_n suprà_fw-la epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 61._o august_n haeresi_fw-la 40._o that_o they_o hold_v justification_n by_o faith_n as_o you_o luther_n say_v they_o know_v it_o not_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o soul_n and_o foundation_n of_o protestancie_n in_o the_o judgement_n and_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o own_o man_n and_o so_o you_o must_v on_o to_o the_o rest_n where_o you_o will_v find_v many_o of_o your_o own_o who_o will_v contradict_v you_o to_o your_o face_n four_o you_o must_v bring_v proof_n that_o those_o man_n be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o waldo_n and_o that_o of_o they_o there_o be_v a_o continual_a succession_n ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o those_o heretic_n call_v apostolici_fw-la whereof_o s._n epiphanius_n and_o s._n augustine_n speak_v though_o they_o condemn_v also_o marriage_n and_o have_v of_o possession_n and_o therefore_o hold_v in_o part_n the_o forename_a heresy_n that_o be_v two_o of_o they_o but_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o waldense_n i_o demand_v good_a proof_n and_o evidence_n that_o such_o man_n be_v existent_a in_o the_o world_n ever_o since_o christ_n ascend_v and_o i_o will_v not_o account_v it_o satisfaction_n if_o you_o tell_v i_o they_o say_v so_o for_o i_o believe_v neither_o they_o nor_o you_o but_o demand_v proof_n bring_v forth_o your_o monument_n and_o read_v we_o the_o name_n of_o their_o bishop_n or_o some_o of_o they_o at_o least_o for_o there_o be_v such_o among_o they_o if_o they_o be_v the_o church_n 4.12_o act._n 20_o 2d_o ephes_n 4.11.13_o eph._n 4.12_o since_o god_n church_n be_v govern_v by_o bishope_n there_o be_v
novatus_fw-la and_o such_o other_o find_v in_o old_a nast_a monument_n if_o upon_o she_o now_o for_o pity_n you_o will_v pull_v the_o waldesian_n habitte_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n the_o beggar_n coat_n i_o mean_v represent_v with_o party_n colour_a patch_n the_o piece_n of_o her_o constitution_n and_o lace_n it_o with_o the_o rag_n you_o find_v in_o illyricus_n it_o will_v be_v very_o trim_a but_o how_o soever_o you_o may_v find_v some_o rag_n in_o antiquity_n it_o be_v still_o evident_a that_o after_o a_o busy_a search_n make_v by_o all_o your_o divine_v into_o library_n and_o record_n you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prudence_n a_o continual_a succession_n of_o that_o kind_n of_o man_n whereof_o you_o be_v or_o of_o that_o whereof_o waldo_n be_v from_o waldo_n upwardes_o to_o the_o apostle_n i_o do_v not_o say_v a_o catholic_a or_o universal_a succession_n of_o they_o but_o a_o succession_n only_o though_o never_o so_o small_a you_o have_v not_o in_o every_o age_n a_o nation_n nor_o one_o diocese_n which_o be_v very_o little_a nor_o so_o much_o such_o be_v your_o beggary_n as_o one_o man_n much_o more_o unpossible_a be_v it_o for_o you_o to_o produce_v a_o succession_n catholic_a or_o universal_a in_o that_o sort_n that_o in_o every_o age_n and_o every_o year_n since_o the_o apostle_n it_o have_v be_v common_a to_o many_o nation_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n 9_o you_o answer_v again_o and_o learned_o as_o you_o think_v that_o in_o fundamental_a point_n the_o roman_n be_v protestant_a and_o therefore_o be_v well_o allege_v out_o be_v the_o negative_a proposition_n in_o the_o bible_n god_n word_n and_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la or_o w●ll_n you_o have_v they_o all_o blot_v out_o to_o satisfy_v the_o demand_n though_o they_o be_v otherwise_o in_o not-fundamentall_a or_o as_o other_o cut_v out_o the_o distinction_n in_o affirmative_n they_o be_v you_o in_o negative_n they_o be_v not_o which_o distinction_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o way_n to_o catch_v woodcock_n but_o hinder_v not_o the_o course_n of_o our_o argument_n for_o the_o roman_a catholic_n hold_v those_o point_n which_o he_o do_v be_v no_o protestant_n nor_o of_o the_o religion_n currant_n now_o a_o day_n among_o you_o and_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o roman_a catholic_n his_o religion_n be_v not_o that_o which_o be_v currant_n in_o italy_n in_o spain_n and_o other_o place_n unite_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n wherefore_o in_o assign_v roman_a catholic_n you_o do_v not_o assign_v a_o protestant_a succession_n whereas_o the_o thing_n demand_v be_v a_o protestant_a succession_n they_o if_o i_o have_v be_v to_o dispute_v with_o the_o waldense_n in_o bohemia_n i_o will_v have_v exact_v the_o like_a proof_n for_o the_o religion_n currant_n among_o they_o that_o be_v as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o many_o time_n a_o company_n of_o man_n of_o the_o religion_n currant_n now_o in_o england_n whereof_o some_o have_v succeed_v other_o and_o this_o must_v have_v be_v ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n day_n if_o the_o succession_n be_v continual_a since_o that_o tyme._n we_o do_v not_o demand_n of_o you_o whether_o we_o have_v a_o succession_n in_o our_o church_n that_o we_o demand_v of_o you_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o your_o own_o of_o protestant_n not_o of_o papist_n of_o man_n profess_v the_o religion_n which_o you_o do_v show_v this_o succession_n produce_v your_o evidence_n to_o prove_v that_o such_o man_n have_v be_v in_o all_o age_n and_o then_o we_o will_v examine_v your_o fundamentalle_n give_v you_o time_n till_o then_o for_o to_o think_v how_o many_o and_o which_o they_o be_v for_o assure_v yourselves_o the_o common_a people_n do_v perceive_v your_o unsufficiencie_n in_o answer_v to_o the_o demand_n which_o you_o can_v fly_v without_o cross_v and_o contradict_v your_o own_o self_n for_o i_o ask_v you_o be_v a_o papist_n a_o protestant_n in_o religion_n you_o answer_n no._n i_o demand_v again_o give_v i_o the_o protestant_a succession_n the_o church_n protestant_n of_o former_a age_n you_o answer_v the_o papist_n succession_n be_v the_o protestant_a succession_n and_o the_o papistical_a church_n be_v the_o church_n protestant_n by_o which_o answer_n grant_v and_o affirm_v the_o papistical_a succession_n and_o church_n to_o be_v the_o protestant_a succession_n and_o church_n you_o do_v grant_v and_o affirm_v a_o papist_n to_o be_v a_o protestant_n which_o before_o you_o have_v deny_v and_o still_o do_v they_o see_v also_o that_o a_o pelagian_n a_o luciferian_n a_o arian_n or_o any_o other_o heretic_n may_v defend_v himself_o as_o you_o do_v for_o each_o of_o they_o hold_v the_o true_a religion_n in_o part_n each_o hold_v some_o affirmative_n and_o be_v negative_a as_o you_o speak_v in_o other_o thing_n and_o each_o pretend_v that_o he_o do_v not_o mistake_v in_o fundamentalle_n 10._o and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o you_o err_v not_o in_o fundamentalle_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o you_o speak_v at_o random_n and_o by_o conjecture_n mearlie_o for_o to_o this_o day_n you_o know_v not_o which_o all_o the_o fundamentalle_n be_v and_o therefore_o can_v be_v certain_a whether_o you_o believe_v every_o one_o of_o they_o or_o do_v not_o i_o answer_v secondlie_o that_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o your_o religion_n and_o you_o mistake_v in_o that_o and_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n direct_o in_o it_o and_o therefore_o err_v fundamentallie_o you_o teach_v also_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o divine_a faith_n which_o be_v a_o gross_a fundamental_a error_n you_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o holy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v likewise_o a_o fundamental_a error_n and_o by_o these_o and_o such_o like_v you_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a and_o so_o fundamentallie_o different_a and_o divide_a neither_o be_v it_o any_o matter_n whether_o these_o and_o the_o like_a error_n be_v express_v in_o proposition_n affirmative_a or_o negative_a religion_n a_o athy_a by_o reason_n of_o one_o negation_n be_v of_o no_o religion_n as_o they_o may_v be_v either_o way_n for_o by_o negative_a error_n a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n turk_n jew_n or_o atheist_n according_a to_o the_o verity_n which_o in_o his_o error_n he_o do_v contradict_v to_o conclude_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o these_o be_v shift_n to_o delay_v time_n and_o to_o deceive_v fool_n for_o the_o thing_n we_o demand_v be_v a_o catalogue_n of_o protestant_a man_n such_o as_o in_o england_n you_o be_v of_o man_n hold_v those_o affirmative_n together_o with_o those_o negative_n which_o you_o do_v hold_v of_o man_n consent_v with_o you_o in_o your_o religion_n and_o belief_n entire_o do_v the_o like_a argument_n i_o will_v make_v against_o the_o waldense_n hussite_n or_o any_o other_o for_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v the_o trinity_n or_o the_o creed_n with_o other_o and_o yet_o differ_v in_o religion_n as_o we_o and_o you_o do_v whether_o the_o thing_n be_v call_v fundamental_a or_o be_v not_o call_v so_o for_o we_o care_v not_o how_o you_o call_v they_o of_o man_n which_o without_o any_o trick_n distinction_n pare_n of_o or_o add_v to_o they_o may_v flat_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o religion_n owe_v currant_n there_o in_o england_n of_o such_o final_o as_o be_v look_v into_o thorough_o and_o behold_v round_o about_o be_v absolutlie_o protestant_n or_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n produce_v the_o catalogue_n of_o these_o man_n let_v your_o evidence_n come_v to_o light_n 11._o your_o man_n in_o the_o begin_n want_v company_n and_o dislike_a the_o religion_n of_o the_o waldense_n and_o hussitte_n will_v fain_o have_v shake_v hand_n with_o the_o grecian_n and_o make_v a_o offer_n but_o they_o be_v instant_o refuse_v and_o shake_v of_o ecclesiae_fw-la censura_fw-la orientalis_n ecclesiae_fw-la as_o the_o world_n do_v well_o know_v by_o their_o censure_n in_o print_n every_o where_o you_o have_v tell_v i_o since_o and_o unskillfullie_o that_o the_o ethiopian_n be_v of_o your_o religion_n be_v demand_v proof_n because_o it_o be_v against_o history_n and_o against_o their_o liturgy_n which_o be_v extant_a you_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v none_o neither_o can_v i_o imagine_v to_o what_o purpose_n you_o shall_v run_v thither_o unless_o it_o be_v to_o get_v a_o out_o side_n which_o may_v keep_v colour_n with_o the_o inside_n of_o your_o church_n i_o remember_v your_o doctrine_n be_v that_o her_o soul_n be_v ever_o stain_v with_o actual_a and_o original_a sin_n and_o that_o all_o her_o action_n be_v foul_v in_o the_o same_o puddle_n to_o which_o doctrine_n of_o your_o own_o i_o may_v add_v by_o experience_n that_o she_o have_v a_o foul_a mouth_n if_o you_o will_v needs_o have_v all_o this_o walk_v in_o a_o black_a out_o side_n too_o you_o may_v go_v
a_o attire_n of_o 4._o of_o apoc._n 3_o ●_o 4._o saint_n and_o crown_v after_o the_o 4.8_o the_o 2._o ti._n 4.8_o victory_n as_o it_o seem_v with_o golden_a 14._o golden_a apoc._n 14._o v._o 14._o crown_n and_o sit_v be_v now_o at_o 13._o at_o ibid._n v._o 13._o rest_n upon_o throne_n round_o about_o the_o throne_n of_o christ_n in_o heaven_n be_v not_o saint_n there_o reign_v with_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thing_n 〈◊〉_d he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v and_o keep_v my_o work_n unto_o the_o end_n i_o will_v give_v he_o power_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d over_o nation_n so_o yourselves_o turn_v it_o and_o he_o shall_v rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n apoc._n 2._o v._o ●6_n see_v matt._n 25._o v._n 21._o &_o 23._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o will_v make_v ruler_n over_o many_o thing_n over_o the_o earth_n or_o if_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o the_o saint_n who_o prayer_n they_o present_v be_v not_o holy_a man_n on_o earth_n you_o must_v bring_v not_o a_o guess_n but_o a_o theological_a demonstration_n for_o it_o i_o be_v here_o to_o bring_v the_o letter_n and_o i_o stick_v to_o it_o and_o can_v be_v remove_v unless_o you_o show_v clear_a scripture_n for_o tradition_n you_o look_v not_o after_o against_o the_o sense_n i_o take_v it_o in_o and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o judge_v not_o by_o you_o for_o i_o esteem_v not_o your_o judgement_n but_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v impossible_a as_o you_o know_v by_o that_o which_o she_o believe_v in_o this_o point_n observe_v this_o for_o the_o next_o 〈◊〉_d angel_n offer_v prayer_n apoc._n 8._o v._o 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o other_o after_o that_o i_o need_v not_o repeat_v it_o another_o angel_n come_v and_o stand_v before_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o golden_a censar_n and_o there_o be_v give_v to_o he_o many_o incense_v that_o he_o shall_v give_v of_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n upon_o the_o altar_n of_o gold_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o incense_v of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n ascend_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n before_o god_n thus_o for_o angel_n and_o saint_n offer_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o god_n and_o in_o this_o be_v include_v essential_o that_o they_o do_v take_v they_o after_o their_o intellectual_a manner_n that_o be_v understand_v they_o hereupon_o the_o church_n do_v call_v upon_o they_o and_o so_o do_v the_o ancient_a father_n who_o testimony_n and_o spirit_n may_v have_v suffice_v for_o our_o example_n we_o believe_v also_o that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a you_o say_v no._n calu._n 3_o inst_z c._n 5._o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v a_o holy_a and_o behooveful_a cogitation_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a 36._o 2._o mac._n 12.46_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a s._n aug._n l._n 8._o the_o civet_n c._n 36._o that_o they_o may_v be_v release_v from_o their_o sin_n i_o say_v the_o scripture_n because_o to_o use_v here_o s._n augustine_n word_n not_o my_o own_o tbe_n book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n not_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o church_n esteem_v canonical_a and_o what_o spirit_n be_v to_o judge_v which_o be_v scripture_n which_o not_o you_o shall_v have_v examine_v hereafter_o at_o large_a 48._o concern_v the_o distinction_n of_o work_n into_o some_o that_o be_v command_v other_o that_o be_v not_o which_o distinction_n you_o reject_v we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v some_o work_v not_o command_v yet_o propose_v by_o way_n of_o counsel_n for_o attain_v of_o great_a perfection_n you_o say_v no_o evangelicall_a matth_n 9_o v._o 21._o evangelicall_a luth._o do_v vot_o monast_n caluin_n 4._o inst_z ca._n 13._o the_o scripture_n if_o thou_o will_v he_o perfect_a go_v sell_v the_o tbing_n which_o thou_o have_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o thou_o shall_v have_v treasure_n in_o heaven_n and_o come_v follow_v i_o 〈◊〉_d counsel_n 1._o cor._n 7._o v._n 25._o ibid._n v._o 40._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o apostle_n concern_v virgin_n i_o have_v not_o a_o commandment_n from_o our_o lord_n but_o counsel_v i_o give_v and_o again_o she_o the_o unmarried_a shall_v be_v more_o bless_a if_o she_o remain_v so_o according_a to_o my_o counsel_n we_o believe_v that_o single_a life_n consecrate_v unto_o god_n be_v better_a than_o wedlock_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o serm._n de_fw-la matr._n caluin_n in_o 1._o cor._n 7._o the_o scripture_n he_o which_o join_v his_o virgin_n in_o matrimony_n do_v well_o and_o he_o which_o join_v she_o not_o do_v better_a 38._o 1._o cor._n 7._o v._n 38._o we_o believe_v that_o religious_a profession_n under_o vow_n be_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n vow_n single_a life_n isay_n 19.21_o vow_n you_o say_v no._n luth_n do_v vot_o monast_n calu._n 4._o inst_z c._n 13._o the_o scripture_n they_o shall_v vow_v vow_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o shall_v pay_v they_o and_o we_o believe_v they_o be_v in_o conscience_n bind_v to_o pay_v their_o vow_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o cal._n cit_fw-la the_o scripture_n vow_v you_o and_o render_v to_o our_o lord_n god_n 75.12_o psal_n 75.12_o let_v i_o note_v here_o by_o the_o way_n that_o you_o discover_v your_o church_n not_o be_v god_n since_o it_o contemn_v these_o thing_n which_o god_n foretell_v will_v be_v in_o he_o and_o approove_v as_o good_a and_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o any_o man_n any_o man_n of_o judgement_n will_v rather_o acknowledge_v the_o spirit_n of_o s._n bennet_n and_o s._n francis_n which_o god_n by_o miracle_n record_v by_o saint_n also_o have_v witness_v to_o be_v from_o he_o than_o your_o spirit_n understand_v this_o scripture_n oppositelie_o to_o their_o spirit_n 49._o as_o for_o the_o commandment_n we_o believe_v that_o he_o which_o will_v attain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n must_v keep_v they_o keep_v mat._n 19.17_o psal_n 14.2_o commandment_n keep_v you_o say_v no._n luth._o in_o 3._o gal._n calu._n in_o 5._o act._n the_o scripture_n if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n lord_n who_o shall_v dwell_v in_o thy_o tabernacle_n or_o who_o shall_v rest_v in_o thy_o holy_a hill_n he_o that_o walk_v without_o spot_n and_o work_v justice_n you_o say_v they_o be_v intolerable_a lut._n de_fw-fr libert_n christ_n calu._n antidote_n conc._n trid._n sess_v 6._o c._n 12._o we_o say_v no._n the_o scripture_n his_o commandment_n be_v not_o heavy_a we_o believe_v that_o they_o may_v be_v and_o have_v be_v observe_v 5.3_o 1._o io._n 5.3_o you_o say_v no._n luth._o in_o 4._o gal._n calu_fw-fr in_o 3._o rom._n the_o scriptute_fw-la zacharie_n and_o elizabeth_n be_v both_o just_a before_o god_n 8.12_o luk._n 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d psal·_fw-la 18._o v._o 8.12_o walk_v in_o all_o the_o commandment_n and_o iustification_n of_o our_o lord_n without_o blame_n the_o law_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v immaculate_a convert_n soul_n &c._n &c._n the_o judgment_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v true_a for_o thy_o seruamt_v keep_v they_o in_o keep_v they_o there_o be_v much_o reward_n and_o of_o king_n josias_n the_o scripture_n say_v that_o he_o return_v to_o our_o lord_n in_o all_o his_o hart_n 5._o psal_n 118.55_o 4._o king_n 23._o v._n 5._o and_o in_o all_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o his_o power_n according_a to_o all_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n thou_o see_v a_o few_o name_n in_o sardis_n which_o have_v not_o defile_v their_o garment_n and_o they_o shall_v walk_v with_o i_o in_o white_n for_o they_o be_v worthy_a 3.4_o apoc._n 3.4_o i_o must_v add_v one_o more_o for_o your_o comfort_n who_o brag_n that_o you_o know_v god_n better_o and_o be_v more_o familiar_o admit_v to_o his_o secret_a counsel_n and_o dear_a to_o the_o spirit_n then_o other_o man_n etc._n 1._o io._n 2_o v._n 3.4_o etc._n etc._n in_o this_o we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v know_v he_o if_o we_o observe_v his_o commandment_n he_o that_o say_v he_o know_v he_o 17.6_o protestant_n liar_n the_o apostle_n keep_v it_o io._n 17.6_o and_o keep_v not_o his_o commandment_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o he_o but_o he_o that_o keep_v his_o word_n in_o he_o in_o very_o deed_n the_o charity_n of_o god_n be_v perfect_v in_o this_o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v in_o he_o 50_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v justice_n inherent_a in_o man_n 〈◊〉_d dan._n 6.22_o justice_n inherenr_n 1._o io._n 3.7_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v such_o in_o the_o sight_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o in_o 3._o gal._n calu·_n in_o 8._o rom._n daniel_n in_o the_o scripture_n before_o he_o god_n justice_n have_v be_v find_v in_o i_o he_o that_o do_v justice_n be_v just_a
fellow_n in_o word_n admit_v a_o real_a presence_n be_v force_v there_o unto_o by_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o man_n yet_o they_o also_o when_o they_o be_v look_v into_o be_v essential_o caluinist_n in_o this_o point_n believe_v no_o more_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sign_n or_o in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n than_o a_o man_n land_n be_v in_o the_o chest_n where_o his_o writing_n be_v or_o in_o his_o father_n will_n and_o testament_n whereby_o they_o be_v make_v he_o which_o be_v whites_n example_n we_o believe_v that_o in_o the_o eucharist_n under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n there_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n you_o say_v no._n so_o john_n caluins_n school_n our_o saviour_n in_o the_o scripture_n this_o be_v my_o body_n presence_n mat_n 26._o v._o 27.28_o real_a presence_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v be_v in_o substance_n flesh_n the_o very_a same_o with_o that_o which_o be_v give_v on_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n you_o say_v no_o it_o be_v not_o in_o substance_n flesh_n but_o plain_a bread_n calu._n school_n our_o saviour_n in_o the_o scripture_n 22.19_o io._n 6_o 51._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &c_n &c_n luk._n 22.19_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o will_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o drink_n in_o the_o cup_n in_o form_n of_o wine_n be_v shed_v for_o we_o and_o therefore_o be_v in_o substance_n blood_n and_o not_o wine_n you_o say_v no_o it_o be_v mere_a wine_n calu._n school_n the_o scripture_n 6.55_o luk._n 22.20_o io._n 6.55_o this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o you_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o say_v no._n calu._n school_v the_o scripture_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v sacrifice_n and_o offer_v unto_o god_n publiklie_o a_o oblation_n every_o where_o you_o say_v no_o there_o be_v be_v no_o sacrifice_a or_o offer_v of_o any_o public_a oblation_n since_o christ_n offer_v himself_o at_o jerusalem_n on_o the_o cross_n luth._o de_fw-la for_o miss_n pro_fw-la eccl._n wit_n calu._n 4._o inst_z c._n 18._o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o son_n even_o to_o the_o go_v down_o oblation_n màlae_fw-la 111_o oblation_n great_a be_v my_o name_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o ●uery_n place_n there_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o there_o be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n a_o clean_a oblation_n because_o my_o name_n be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n is_n be_v pretty_a to_o see_v how_o you_o offer_v to_o interpret_v this_o place_n of_o your_o work_n as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o clean_a oblation_n here_o speak_v of_o and_o oppose_v to_o the_o public_a visible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o you_o teach_v and_o maintain_v that_o all_o your_o work_n be_v foul_a and_o impure_a 141._o luth._o the_o bo●_n oper_n fol._n 581._o gal._n l._n 1_o de_fw-fr lib._n arb_n p._n 141._o all_o your_o justice_n or_o righteousness_n as_o the_o cloth_n of_o a_o menstrued_a woman_n all_o your_o fair_a and_o best_a action_n mortal_a sin_n these_o forsooth_o be_v that_o which_o god_n himself_o esteem_v a_o clean_a oblation_n these_o be_v the_o rare_a sacrifice_n which_o can_v not_o be_v find_v among_o the_o jew_n further_o we_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n 5.6_o psal_n 109.4_o heb._n 5.6_o do_v offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n after_o a_o unbloody_a manner_n before_o his_o passion_n for_o his_o church_n and_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o do_v ordain_v it_o shall_v be_v continue_v and_o frequent_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v to_o offer_v and_o institute_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o do_v capt._n bab._n cal._n 4._o inst_z c._n 18._o &_o 1_o cor._n 9_o the_o scripture_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o do_v this._n sacrifice_n luk._n 22.19_o 1._o cor._n 11.24_o mat._n 26.28_o luk._n 22.20_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o translate_v word_n by_o word_n be_v this_o the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o you_o in_o which_o sentence_n the_o word_n signify_v effusion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o accord_n with_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v blood_n but_o with_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 24._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mat._n 26.28_o mar._n 14.24_o luk._n 22_o 20._o and_o of_o the_o body_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d luk._n 22.19_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o cor._n 11_o 24._o which_o signify_v the_o chalice_n as_o every_o syntaxian_a know_v whereby_o the_o sense_n be_v this_o the_o chalice_n which_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o since_o you_o can_v exclude_v the_o time_n present_a because_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d import_v it_o and_o all_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o evangelist_n agree_v in_o it_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o then_o before_o the_o passion_n at_o the_o last_o supper_n the_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o the_o church_n and_o for_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o jesus_n christ_n a_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o this_o we_o call_v a_o unblody_n and_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n we_o believe_v that_o under_o jesus_n christ_n our_o high_a priest_n there_o be_v priest_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o abrog_n miss_n pri_fw-la calu._n 4._o inst_z c._n 18._o 10._o isay_n 66._o v._o 19.20.21_o priest_n episcopi_fw-la &_o presbyteri_fw-la propriè_fw-la iam_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la vocantur_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la 8_o aug._n li._n 20_o de_fw-fr ciu._n c._n 10._o the_o scripture_n i_o will_v send_v of_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v to_o the_o gentile_n into_o the_o sea_n into_o africa_n and_o lydia_n into_o italy_n and_o greece_n to_o the_o land_n far_o of_o etc._n etc._n and_o i_o will_v take_v of_o they_o to_o be_v priest_n and_o levite_n say_v our_o lord_n we_o believe_v the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n be_v by_o christ_n institution_n for_o a_o perpetual_a memory_n and_o representation_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n to_o do_v that_o which_o our_o saviour_n do_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n that_o be_v as_o i_o have_v declare_v by_o the_o gospel_n to_o offer_v unbloody_a sacrifice_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o calu._n cit_fw-la the_o scripture_n 22.19_o luk._n 22.19_o do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v also_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n a_o altar_n these_o three_o thing_n sacrifice_n priest_n and_o alter_v have_v a_o reference_n of_o coexistence_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o for_o miss_n eccl._n wit._n calu._n 4._o inst_z cit_fw-la &_o 1_o cor._n 9_o the_o scripture_n in_o that_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o altar_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n 10_o isay_n 19.19_o altar_n heb._n 13_o 10_o and_o the_o apostle_n we_o have_v a_o altar_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o eat_v who_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n 54._o we_o believe_v that_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v whether_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n in_o writing_n or_o else_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n you_o say_v no._n luth._o post_n in_o fest_n sancti_fw-la steph._n calu._n 4._o inst_z c._n 8._o &_o antid_v sess_v 4_o kemn_a ibid._n the_o scripture_n hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v tradition_n 2._o thess_n 2.15_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tradition_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n we_o believe_v that_o god_n word_n shall_v by_o divine_a assistance_n be_v continual_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o open_o be_v still_o profess_v you_o acknowledge_v no_o infallible_a delivery_n of_o true_a doctrine_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n luth._o calu._n cit_fw-la &_o beza_n not_o eccl._n whitt_n count_v 2._o q._n 4._o c._n 3
you_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o corporal_a eye_n may_v both_o find_v their_o object_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n we_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o believe_v the_o sense_n the_o apostle_n see_v our_o saviour_n and_o believe_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o faithful_a assemble_v when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v among_o they_o be_v visible_a and_o yet_o they_o where_o the_o church_n first_o therefore_o in_o a_o word_n i_o will_v declare_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o soever_o be_v be_v visible_a secondlie_o i_o will_v show_v you_o the_o greatness_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n i_o principal_o do_v intend_v in_o this_o chapter_n thirdlie_o the_o durance_n or_o perpetuity_n that_o you_o may_v frame_v in_o your_o understanding_n the_o true_a conceit_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 3._o and_o first_o touch_v the_o visibilitie_n or_o to_o speak_v yet_o more_o general_o touch_v the_o sensible_a perceptibility_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o speak_v of_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o that_o which_o make_v a_o continual_a noise_n visibilitie_n visibilitie_n and_o be_v always_o speak_v and_o in_o all_o man_n eye_n and_o can_v be_v hide_v be_v a_o thing_n sensible_a unto_o man_n that_o have_v eye_n and_o ear_n and_o if_o this_o thing_n be_v in_o all_o nation_n and_o at_o all_o time_n it_o be_v sensible_a to_o all_o the_o world_n now_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 10_o psal_n 18._o v._n 6._o isa_n 52._o v._n 10_o which_o soever_o it_o be_v which_o i_o prove_v thus_o by_o scripture_n he_o have_v put_v his_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o sun_n say_v david_n and_o isaie_v our_o lord_n have_v prepare_v his_o holy_a arm_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o gentile_n and_o all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o god_n they_o of_o the_o west_n shall_v fear_v the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o they_o of_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n his_o glory_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v as_o a_o violent_a stream_n 21._o 59_o v._n 19.20_o 21._o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n drive_v and_o there_o shall_v come_v the_o redeemer_n to_o zion_n and_o to_o they_o that_o return_v from_o iniquity_n in_o jacob_n say_v our_o lord_n this_o be_v my_o covenant_n with_o they_o say_v our_o lord_n my_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n that_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o thy_o seed_n say_v our_o lord_n 47._o 62._o v._n 6._o mat._n 5._o v._n 15_o see_v s._n aug._n enar_a in_o ps_n 47._o from_o this_o present_a and_o for_o ever_o upon_o thy_o wall_n jerusalem_n i_o have_v appoint_v watchman_n all_o the_o day_n and_o all_o the_o night_n for_o ever_o they_o shall_v not_o hold_v their_o peace_n you_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n a_o city_n can_v be_v hide_v situate_v on_o a_o mountain_n 4._o i_o omit_v the_o allegation_n of_o more_o authority_n because_o hereafter_o i_o shall_v speak_v more_o of_o this_o matter_n and_o these_o few_o declare_v and_o prove_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o i_o say_v i_o go_v therefore_o on_o to_o the_o chief_a point_n intend_v in_o this_o chapter_n which_o be_v to_o show_v god_n eternal_a and_o inviolable_a ordinance_n about_o the_o church_n universality_n 3._o universality_n gal._n 3._o and_o to_o begin_v with_o moses_n we_o have_v in_o he_o the_o promise_n of_o a_o ample_a posterity_n to_o old_a abraham_n father_n of_o believer_n make_v by_o god_n himself_o and_o expound_v by_o s._n paul_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 17._o gen._n 22._o v._n 17._o i_o will_v bless_v thou_o and_o i_o will_v multiply_v thy_o seed_n as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o as_o the_o sand_n that_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n shore_n thy_o seed_n shall_v possess_v the_o gate_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v be_v bless_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o do_v god_n then_o confirm_v with_o a_o oath_n and_o proceed_v in_o the_o promise_n 14._o 28._o v._n 14._o confirm_v it_o again_o to_o jacob_n afterward_o thy_o seed_n shall_v he_o as_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n thou_o shall_v be_v dilate_v to_o the_o west_n and_o to_o the_o east_n and_o to_o the_o north_n and_o to_o the_o south_n and_o in_o thou_o and_o in_o thy_o seed_n all_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v bless_v next_o in_o the_o psalm_n we_o hear_v god_n the_o father_n say_v unto_o his_o son_n our_o saviour_n 8_o psal_n 2._o v._n 8_o ask_v of_o i_o and_o i_o will_v give_v the_o gentile_n for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o thy_o possession_n the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o prophet_n add_v in_o a_o other_o psalm_n all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v remember_v and_o be_v convert_v unto_o our_o lord_n 28.29_o 21._o v._n 28.29_o and_o all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v adore_v in_o his_o sight_n all_o nation_n whatsoever_o thou_o have_v make_v shall_v come_v and_o shall_v adore_v before_o thou_o o_o lord_n 6._o 65._o v._n 6._o 5._o among_o the_o prophet_n isaie_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n the_o mountain_n of_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v prepare_v in_o the_o top_n of_o mountain_n and_o shall_v be_v raise_v above_o the_o little_a hill_n 2.3_o isa_n 2_o v._n 2.3_o and_o all_o nation_n shall_v flow_v unto_o it_o and_o many_o people_n shall_v go_v and_o shall_v say_v come_v and_o let_v we_o go_v up_o to_o the_o mount_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o his_o way_n and_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o his_o path_n and_o again_o upon_o thou_o o_o jerusalem_n shall_v our_o lord_n arise_v and_o his_o glory_n shall_v beseene_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o gentile_n shall_v walk_v in_o thy_o light_n and_o king_n in_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o rise_n 5._o 60._o v._n 2.3.4_o 5._o lift_v up_o thy_o eye_n round_o about_o and_o behold_v all_o these_o be_v gather_v together_o they_o be_v come_v unto_o thou_o thy_o son_n shall_v come_v from_o a_o far_o and_o thy_o daughter_n shall_v arise_v from_o thy_o side_n then_o shall_v thou_o see_v and_o shall_v abound_v and_o thy_o hart_n shall_v wonder_v and_o be_v enlarge_v when_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o sea_n shall_v be_v convert_v unto_o thou_o the_o strength_n of_o gentile_n shall_v come_v to_o thou_o after_o he_o daniel_n i_o behold_v in_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o night_n and_o lo_o with_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n there_o come_v in_o as_o it_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n 13.14_o dan._n 7._o v._n 13.14_o and_o he_o come_v even_o to_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n and_o in_o his_o sight_n they_o offer_v he_o and_o he_o give_v he_o power_n and_o honour_n and_o kingdom_n and_o all_o people_n tribe_n and_o tongue_n shall_v serve_v he_o his_o power_n be_v a_o eternal_a power_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v take_v away_o and_o his_o kingdeme_n shall_v not_o be_v corrupt_v the_o like_a be_v in_o the_o rest_n i_o add_v only_a malachi_n which_o be_v the_o last_o and_o near_o to_o our_o saviour_n time_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n even_o to_o the_o go_v down_o 11_o mal._n 1._o v._n 11_o great_a be_v my_o name_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o there_o be_v offer_v unto_o my_o name_n a_o clean_a oblation_n because_o my_o name_n be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n 6._o as_o the_o old_a testament_n so_o the_o new_a do_v establish_v the_o foresay_a universality_n of_o the_o church_n and_o our_o saviour_n do_v give_v commission_n unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o to_o their_o successor_n to_o raise_v such_o a_o one_o all_o power_n say_v he_o be_v give_v i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n go_v therefore_o teach_v you_o all_o nation_n 19.20_o mat._n 28._o v._n 19.20_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n go_v into_o the_o world_n preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n and_o in_o another_o 15._o mar._n 16._o v._n 15._o he_o declare_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o foresay_a prophetical_a speech_n against_o such_o as_o will_v have_v imagine_v they_o be_v conditional_a speech_n only_o these_o be_v the_o word_n which_o i_o speak_v to_o you_o 44.45.46_o luk._n 24._o v._n 44.45.46_o when_o i_o
hunt_v after_o in_o the_o former_a book_n but_o can_v not_o get_v tiding_n of_o in_o all_o the_o world_n before_o luther_n ay_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n will_v on_o further_o to_o look_v out_o this_o church_n of_o god_n but_o first_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o note_n that_o as_o in_o the_o natural_a body_n there_o be_v many_o superfluous_a material_a part_n of_o flesh_n fat_a and_o some_o other_o even_a in_o the_o hand_n ear_n and_o eye_n as_o you_o see_v in_o man_n that_o be_v gross_a which_o part_n though_o they_o be_v coherent_a now_o be_v not_o resume_v all_o in_o the_o resurrection_n because_o they_o will_v extend_v and_o increase_v the_o body_n unto_o more_o than_o the_o just_a bigness_n of_o the_o man_n and_o beyond_o the_o original_a proportion_n of_o the_o soul_n so_o in_o this_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v many_o part_n which_o will_v not_o rise_v with_o it_o unto_o glory_n and_o therefore_o be_v multiply_v above_o the_o number_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n yet_o be_v call_v as_o many_o be_v call_v few_o choose_v for_o a_o time_n they_o do_v believe_v but_o they_o fall_v again_o before_o they_o die_v another_o thing_n you_o may_v note_v if_o you_o please_v that_o as_o the_o natural_a body_n receive_v the_o soul_n when_o the_o principal_a part_n be_v prepare_v do_v grow_v and_o flourish_v and_o afterward_o lose_v again_o the_o exterior_a beauty_n in_o old_a age_n so_o the_o church_n receive_v the_o spirit_n when_o by_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o chief_a part_n the_o apostle_n be_v prepare_v and_o then_o do_v extend_v itself_o in_o bigness_n and_o flourish_v but_o in_o her_o old_a age_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n she_o will_v loose_v her_o exterior_a beauty_n and_o majesty_n and_o be_v greevouslie_o afflict_v and_o persecute_v for_o a_o 14._o a_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o her_o extreme_a persecution_n will_v be_v visible_a for_o persecution_n itself_o be_v a_o evident_a argument_n of_o visibility_n as_o in_o england_n you_o see_v at_o the_o same_o time_n she_o will_v be_v also_o catholic_a and_o spread_v over_o the_o earth_n as_o s._n john_n tell_v in_o the_o twentieth_o chapter_n of_o his_o revelation_n where_o of_o the_o persecutor_n he_o say_v they_o ascend_v upon_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v the_o camp_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o belove_a city_n upon_o which_o word_n clear_a enough_o in_o themselves_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr cluitate_fw-la dei_fw-la write_v thus_o they_o be_v not_o say_v to_o come_v into_o one_o place_n as_o though_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o saint_n or_o the_o belove_a city_n shall_v be_v in_o some_o one_o place_n since_o this_o indeed_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o wheresoever_o this_o church_n shall_v be_v then_o which_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o nation_n for_o so_o much_o be_v insinuate_v by_o the_o latitude_n of_o the_o earth_n there_o shall_v be_v god_n belove_a city_n there_o shall_v she_o be_v besiege_v by_o all_o her_o enemy_n for_o they_o also_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o nation_n with_o she_o so_o he_o li._n 20._o c._n 11._o moreover_o that_o extreme_a persecution_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v very_o short_a as_o endure_v some_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a which_o the_o scripture_n also_o have_v declare_v he_o antichrist_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o can_v change_v time_n and_o law_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v deliver_v into_o his_o hand_n even_o to_o a_o time_n time_n and_o half_a a_o tyme._n dan_n 7.25_o power_n be_v give_v to_o it_o the_o beast_n to_o work_v two_o and_o forty_o month_n ap._n 13.5_o they_o shall_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n two_o and_o forty_o month_n ap._n 11.2_o from_o the_o time_n when_o the_o continual_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o abomination_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o 1290._o day_n dan._n 12.11_o see_v also_o ap._n 12._o v._n 6._o &_o 14._o time_n as_o s._n john_n do_v foretell_v but_o now_o to_o find_v this_o church_n the_o second_o chapter_n the_o catholic_a church_n assign_v 11._o have_v see_v the_o picture_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o in_o scripture_n it_o have_v be_v draw_v by_o god_n himself_o it_o be_v not_o hard_o for_o he_o that_o will_v cast_v a_o eye_n upon_o the_o world_n and_o compare_v this_o picture_n with_o the_o community_n he_o find_v there_o to_o discover_v among_o all_o church_n and_o congregation_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_a or_o to_o learn_v it_o if_o he_o will_v but_o ask_v the_o question_n of_o any_o man_n for_o all_o 7._o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la relig_n c_o 7._o and_o even_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n as_o s._n augustine_n long_o ago_o do_v observe_v when_o they_o talk_v not_o with_o those_o of_o their_o own_o sect_n but_o with_o other_o do_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o call_v no_o other_o catholic_n but_o the_o catholic_a because_o they_o can_v otherwise_o be_v understand_v unless_o they_o design_v she_o by_o that_o name_n which_o the_o whole_a world_n call_v she_o by_o man_n general_o be_v demand_v which_o be_v catholic_n point_n at_o we_o and_o be_v ask_v which_o church_n be_v the_o catholic_a do_v direct_a unto_o that_o which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a see_n this_o be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n paul_n this_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augugustine_n and_o s._n gregory_n and_o ever_o since_o and_o be_v now_o ask_v all_o christian_n such_o only_o except_v as_o yourselves_o condemn_v for_o heretic_n and_o they_o will_v tell_v you_o so_o ask_v jew_n and_o pagan_n and_o they_o will_v tell_v you_o this_o be_v the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n ask_v your_o fellow_n white_a cowell_n and_o such_o other_o and_o they_o will_v send_v you_o to_o this_o 12._o if_o a_o man_n shall_v have_v come_v to_o luther_n when_o he_o do_v look_v round_o about_o for_o company_n and_o find_v none_o of_o his_o opinion_n and_o shall_v have_v say_v unto_o he_o sir_n luther_n in_o the_o bible_n there_o be_v a_o ample_a description_n of_o a_o perperuall_a catholic_a church_n i_o pray_v you_o which_o be_v it_o that_o i_o may_v be_v christian_a in_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n your_o doctor_n for_o his_o hart_n can_v have_v direct_v to_o no_o other_o then_o to_o that_o congregation_n which_o then_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o bysshop_n of_o rome_n for_o to_o you_o he_o can_v not_o have_v direct_v he_o because_o poor_a man_n you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o world_n as_o yet_o with_o your_o religion_n nor_o ever_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a as_o in_o the_o former_a book_n to_o your_o confusion_n have_v be_v see_v to_o have_v say_v that_o he_o a_o sole_a man_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n which_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o have_v be_v to_o multiply_v himself_o over_o the_o world_n into_o many_o nation_n and_o into_o million_o of_o man_n at_o once_o to_o the_o jew_n or_o pagan_n he_o can_v with_o no_o face_n have_v send_v he_o and_o have_v he_o do_v so_o they_o will_v have_v give_v he_o the_o lie_n it_o rest_v therefore_o that_o luther_n and_o so_o caluin_n so_o jewel_n must_v have_v direct_v he_o to_o we_o and_o have_v tell_v he_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v that_o which_o have_v and_o still_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o roman_a see_n 13._o i_o know_v some_o of_o your_o fellow_n will_v send_v a_o man_n to_o the_o grecian_n and_o some_o further_a to_o the_o aethiopian_n but_o these_o be_v not_o protestant_n as_o the_o grecian_n declare_v themselves_o and_o by_o the_o aethiopian_n doctrine_n he_o may_v see_v that_o be_v not_o blind_a neither_o have_v the_o grecian_a belief_n in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ever_o be_v in_o the_o general_a communion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o therefore_o grecisme_n be_v not_o nor_o ever_o be_v catholic_n and_o the_o same_o it_o be_v of_o aethiopian_n and_o all_o other_o another_o shift_n you_o have_v and_o this_o be_v to_o say_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v invisible_a among_o the_o roman_n the_o grecian_n aethiopian_n german_n and_o other_o but_o lie_v hide_v this_o will_v trouble_v the_o man_n sure_o for_o how_o shall_v he_o be_v instruct_v by_o she_o and_o embrace_v her_o communion_n unless_o he_o can_v find_v she_o and_o how_o shall_v he_o find_v she_o if_o she_o do_v not_o appear_v but_o be_v invisible_a moreover_o he_o will_v say_v that_o the_o church_n which_o the_o scripture_n have_v describe_v be_v there_o also_o declare_v to_o be_v perpetual_o visible_a with_o gate_n ever_o open_a the_o
pastor_n always_o exercise_v their_o holy_a function_n and_o god_n word_n in_o their_o mouth_n ever_o for_o this_o church_n he_o do_v inquire_v show_v he_o this_o church_n and_o he_o will_v trouble_v you_o no_o long_o for_o the_o rest_n he_o shall_v have_v there_o a_o three_o shift_n be_v to_o send_v he_o to_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o to_o tell_v he_o that_o indeed_o then_o be_v this_o communion_n with_o all_o nation_n this_o ample_a church_n which_o the_o scripture_n do_v commend_v be_v then_o but_o since_o it_o decay_v and_o now_o you_o be_v build_v it_o again_o this_o journey_n be_v to_o long_o for_o he_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o read_v book_n otherwise_o he_o will_v not_o trouble_v you_o nor_o your_o congregation_n at_o all_o for_o he_o shall_v easy_o find_v the_o thing_n himself_o wherefore_o that_o he_o may_v be_v direct_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o man_n better_o see_v in_o that_o business_n he_o desire_v to_o know_v which_o and_o where_o be_v the_o present_a catholic_a church_n and_o by_o that_o church_n he_o will_v be_v direct_v about_o former_a time_n he_o desire_v therefore_o d._n luther_n to_o tell_v he_o where_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v now_o for_o such_o a_o perpetual_a one_o the_o bible_n speak_v of_o this_o question_n must_v be_v answer_v the_o man_n that_o do_v ask_v it_o may_v be_v any_o that_o be_v in_o england_n for_o example_n and_o it_o may_v have_v be_v answer_v in_o lurhers_n time_n who_o be_v your_o master_n for_o which_o reason_n i_o tie_v the_o question_n to_o that_o time_n for_o the_o more_o perspicuity_n and_o leave_v the_o man_n with_o you_o to_o answer_v for_o your_o master_n 14._o your_o fellow_n find_v here_o no_o way_n to_o fly_v the_o question_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o know_a church_n of_o the_o world_n in_o luther_n time_n that_o which_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o labour_n to_o find_v she_o in_o error_n and_o apostasy_n so_o white_a field_n and_o other_o of_o your_o companion_n so_o luther_n so_o caluin_n of_o error_n i_o will_v speak_v hereafter_o i_o look_v now_o for_o the_o church_n only_o because_o this_o be_v to_o be_v find_v first_o before_o we_o dispute_v of_o further_a matter_n and_o thus_o i_o urge_v that_o church_n which_o all_o the_o world_n do_v say_v be_v the_o catholic_a church_n we_o likewise_o arg._n 1_o if_o we_o will_v not_o be_v ridiculous_o senseless_a must_v believe_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o be_v rome_n which_o the_o world_n god_n we_o profess_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o in_o all_o age_n to_o have_v be_v the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n so_o white_a defence_n c._n 41._o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o fellow_n we_o most_o firm_o believe_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v and_o die_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n in_o which_o undoubted_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v find_v field_n church_n l._n 3._o c_o 8_o and_z c._n 47._o we_o never_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o church_n wherein_o those_o holy_a man_n s._n bernard_n s._n dominick_n etc._n etc._n do_v live_v and_o die_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o hold_v the_o save_a profession_n of_o heavenly_a truth_n see_v he_o also_o in_o the_o sixth_o chap._n of_o the_o same_o book_n we_o confess_v that_o all_o christian_a good_a be_v in_o the_o papacy_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o it_o come_v down_o to_o us._n luth._o epist_n count_v anabapt_n &_o ibid._n i_o say_v further_o that_o in_o the_o papacy_n be_v the_o true_a christianity_n yea_o the_o true_a kernel_n of_o christianity_n and_o upon_o the_o 28._o of_o genes_n we_o confess_v the_o church_n to_o be_v among_o the_o papist_n for_o they_o have_v baptism_n absolution_n the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o there_o be_v many_o godly_a among_o they_o we_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o church_n remain_v under_o the_o pope_n tyraenny_n but_o they_o be_v such_o as_o with_o sacrilegious_a impiety_n he_o have_v profane_v etc._n etc._n caluin_n 4._o inst_z c._n 3._o and_o upon_o 2_o thessall_n 2._o he_o confess_v the_o church_n communicate_v with_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v temple_n and_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n say_v be_v rome_n and_o that_o london_n which_o the_o world_n say_v be_v london_n but_o the_o whole_a world_n say_v that_o the_o company_n of_o christian_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o so_o your_o fellow_n so_o your_o master_n so_o we_o so_o jew_n so_o pagan_n and_o no_o other_o can_v be_v find_v wherefore_o since_o god_n word_n and_o promise_n of_o a_o perpetual_a and_o universal_a church_n must_v needs_o be_v true_a we_o must_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v this_o 15._o moreover_o the_o religion_n which_o you_o call_v papistry_n be_v now_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o almost_o all_o nation_n and_o be_v confess_o the_o general_a religion_n of_o the_o christian_n world_n before_o luther_n for_o many_o hundred_o arg._n 2_o year_n together_o wherefore_o this_o religion_n be_v catholic_a and_o this_o company_n the_o catholic_a church_n of_o god_n you_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o grecian_n agree_v not_o with_o us._n but_o this_o make_v not_o for_o protestancie_n and_o moerover_n in_o your_o sense_n it_o be_v false_a for_o though_o they_o have_v not_o be_v continual_o in_o our_o communion_n all_o this_o time_n yet_o in_o this_o time_n they_o have_v be_v in_o our_o communion_n and_o so_o have_v the_o armenian_n and_o other_o too_o which_o be_v all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v and_o sufficient_a for_o to_o demonstrate_v that_o our_o communion_n have_v be_v catholic_a in_o the_o time_n i_o have_v speak_v of_o and_o if_o you_o will_v plead_v for_o they_o that_o also_o their_o schism_n have_v be_v sometime_o thus_o catholic_a i_o answer_v as_o before_o that_o grecisme_n be_v never_o general_o the_o faith_n of_o christendom_n nor_o any_o other_o faith_n whatsoever_o but_o that_o only_a which_o we_o profess_v not_o the_o grecian_a i_o say_v not_o the_o aethiopian_a not_o the_o armenian_a not_o the_o berengarian_a the_o waldesian_n the_o lutheran_n the_o caluinian_a none_o at_o all_o and_o herein_o the_o history_n of_o all_o country_n and_o the_o memory_n of_o all_o nation_n bear_v i_o witness_v second_o you_o say_v that_o mahomet_n have_v seduce_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o restrain_v the_o latitude_n which_o we_o pretend_v whereunto_o i_o answer_v first_o notwithstanding_o mahomete_n and_o his_o company_n that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o christian_n world_n have_v be_v with_o we_o and_o with_o no_o other_o which_o be_v all_o i_o desire_v i_o answer_v second_o that_o our_o community_n have_v gain_v more_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n than_o ever_o the_o pagan_a take_v away_o by_o a_o infinite_a increase_n both_o in_o this_o old_a and_o also_o in_o the_o new_a world_n witness_v all_o those_o nation_n in_o europe_n which_o have_v be_v convert_v since_o that_o impostor_n come_v beside_o the_o daily_a and_o admirable_a increase_n in_o india_n japonia_n brasile_n china_n and_o other_o place_n you_o answer_v thirdlie_o that_o all_o thos●_n world_n of_o people_n have_v be_v in_o error_n but_o this_o be_v impertinent_a for_o here_o i_o look_v only_o for_o the_o church_n that_o we_o may_v find_v it_o and_o when_o we_o have_v find_v it_o we_o will_v inquire_v then_o whether_o it_o have_v err_v or_o no._n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v evident_a because_o no_o other_o be_v or_o have_v be_v in_o the_o general_a communion_n of_o nation_n but_o only_o this_o nor_o ever_o any_o for_o the_o latitude_n of_o communion_n equal_a to_o it_o 16._o i_o go_v now_o futther_o and_o prescribe_v against_o you_o for_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n thus_o that_o arg._n 3_o faith_n which_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v be_v general_o believe_v to_o be_v divine_a 24._o quod_fw-la universa_fw-la tenet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nec_fw-la concilijs_fw-la institutum_fw-la sed_fw-la semper_fw-la retentum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la authoritate_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditum_fw-la rectissimè_fw-la creditur_fw-la s._n aug._n l_o 4._o de_fw-mi bapt._n c._n 24._o and_o look_v upward_o towards_o the_o apostle_n time_n no_o other_o origin_n of_o it_o can_v be_v find_v be_v very_o to_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v such_o but_o such_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o this_o community_n for_o it_o have_v be_v the_o general_a belief_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o i_o have_v show_v and_o that_o no_o other_o origin_n of_o it_o can_v be_v find_v i_o prove_v clear_o because_o whensoever_o you_o or_o any_o other_o begin_v late_a we_o show_v easy_o that_o it_o be_v before_o and_o this_o because_o you_o persist_v without_o ground_n in_o your_o
fond_a persuasion_n any_o indifferent_a man_n who_o do_v understand_v latin_a may_n do_v thus_o in_o any_o main_a controversy_n of_o faith_n which_o you_o question_v and_o accuse_v this_o great_a company_n i_o now_o speak_v of_o of_o innovation_n do_v you_o name_v the_o time_n when_o their_o doctrine_n first_o begin_v and_o let_v he_o who_o will_v see_v the_o trial_n take_v gualterius_fw-la coccius_n or_o some_o other_o of_o our_o author_n who_o write_v of_o that_o matter_n and_o he_o shall_v find_v another_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n who_o do_v teach_v it_o before_o the_o time_n or_o party_n you_o assign_v whereby_o it_o will_v be_v evident_a unto_o he_o that_o you_o be_v deceive_v about_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o and_o if_o he_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o the_o book_n he_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o in_o the_o father_n i_o say_v in_o any_o main_a controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o in_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o because_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o make_v law_n and_o prescribe_v ceremony_n and_o therefore_o may_v introduce_v or_o alter_v such_o thing_n according_a as_o the_o circumstance_n in_o her_o judgement_n require_v for_o this_o reason_n i_o speak_v of_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o such_o thing_n who_o institution_n we_o hold_v to_o be_v divine_a for_o example_n the_o substance_n of_o baptism_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n but_o ceremony_n have_v be_v add_v and_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v by_o divine_a institution_n but_o prayer_n and_o ceremony_n have_v be_v and_o may_v yet_o be_v add_v by_o the_o church_n 17._o if_o you_o be_v discontent_v with_o this_o manner_n of_o proceed_v from_o which_o without_o a_o prejudice_n you_o can_v disclaim_v at_o all_o i_o urge_v a_o other_o and_o take_v learned_a man_n to_o scan_v the_o business_n in_o the_o seven_o age_n when_o the_o christian_a word_n be_v papistical_a and_o of_o our_o religion_n as_o you_o confess_v the_o scholar_n and_o wise_a man_n have_v the_o father_n write_n and_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o sixth_o age_n which_o you_o must_v needs_o grant_v because_o the_o precedent_a age_n do_v leave_v they_o to_o their_o posterity_n the_o father_n to_o their_o child_n the_o master_n to_o their_o scholar_n now_o those_o of_o the_o seven_o age_n as_o i_o have_v note_v more_o full_o in_o the_o former_a book_n bysshop_n pastor_n learned_a man_n and_o general_o all_o the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n have_v these_o pregnant_a and_o infallible_a mean_n of_o information_n by_o writing_n and_o otherwise_o do_v judge_v and_o believe_v and_o thereupon_o do_v engage_v their_o part_n in_o heaven_n and_o eternal_a estate_n that_o they_o receive_v their_o faith_n and_o religion_n from_o the_o former_a age_n be_v the_o sixth_o wherefore_o since_o a_o world_n of_o man_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o whether_o their_o father_n go_v to_o mass_n pray_v to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n can_v not_o be_v deceive_v the_o thing_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o there_o be_v infinite_a eye_n observe_v religious_o what_o be_v do_v it_o follow_v cleerlie_a since_o the_o world_n general_o do_v then_o believe_v this_o to_o be_v the_o religion_n profess_v by_o their_o father_n that_o so_o it_o be_v 18._o my_o four_o argument_n shall_v be_v this_o papistry_n as_o you_o term_v it_o be_v the_o general_a religion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o three_o as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o ecclesirsticall_a history_n of_o that_o time_n whereby_o appear_v that_o all_o general_o do_v go_v to_o mass_n pray_v to_o saint_n confess_v their_o sin_n etc._n etc._n and_o your_o man_n also_o arg._n 4_o do_v confess_v it_o again_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v once_o in_o rome_n their_o communion_n once_o be_v withal_o the_o world_n and_o this_o religion_n do_v remain_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o nation_n till_o the_o time_n of_o s._n leo_n and_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a as_o you_o may_v observe_v in_o their_o book_n wherein_o their_o communion_n with_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v manifest_a 6._o so_o compare_v the_o sixth_o age_n to_o the_o five_o the_o five_o age_n to_o the_o four_o &c._n &c._n as_o i_o before_o do_v the_o 7._o to_o the_o 6._o now_o saint_n gregory_n die_v in_o the_o year_n six_o hundred_o and_o four_o and_o bonifacius_n the_o three_o who_o in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n have_v be_v employ_v at_o constantinople_n come_v to_o be_v pope_n and_o die_v also_o within_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n after_o in_o which_o space_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v not_o general_o change_v as_o we_o see_v manifest_o by_o all_o history_n of_o that_o time_n therefore_o the_o religion_n which_o be_v universal_o in_o the_o world_n in_o bonifacius_n his_o time_n be_v the_o same_o religion_n with_o that_o which_o be_v universal_o in_o the_o world_n in_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n which_o religion_n you_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o right_n moreover_o that_o in_o the_o foresay_a space_n of_o three_o year_n it_o be_v not_o change_v beside_o the_o testimony_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o that_o time_n where_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o such_o a_o change_n by_o friend_n or_o foe_n but_o all_o thing_n currant_n as_o before_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o confirm_v first_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o saint_n augustine_n and_o his_o company_n who_o be_v send_v by_o pope_n gregory_n bring_v papistry_n from_o he_o into_o england_n as_o be_v large_o observe_v in_o the_o protestant_n apology_n and_o by_o your_o learned_a man_n there_o confess_v ●_o prot._n apol_n tr_fw-la 1._o sect._n ●_o i_o prove_v it_o second_o by_o the_o writing_n of_o such_o as_o live_v in_o the_o sixth_o age_n wherein_o be_v express_o contain_v all_o point_n of_o papistry_n which_o you_o may_v find_v in_o coccius_n and_o gualterius_fw-la if_o you_o take_v the_o pain_n and_o i_o will_v put_v down_o if_o it_o be_v require_v three_o it_o be_v not_o only_o incredible_a to_o any_o man_n of_o judgement_n but_o also_o manifest_o unpossible_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o divine_a ordinance_n and_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o all_o christian_a people_n in_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n without_o meet_v in_o common_a council_n without_o resistance_n of_o any_o zealous_a man_n without_o force_n of_o arm_n or_o other_o constraint_n shall_v general_o change_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o conspire_v all_o general_o for_o you_o can_v produce_v any_o one_o man_n who_o stand_v for_o your_o religion_n in_o that_o time_n which_o you_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v be_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v not_o in_o history_n mention_v of_o any_o one_o protestant_a man_n then_o resist_v therefore_o i_o say_v again_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o they_o shall_v conspire_v all_o all_o kingdom_n all_o state_n all_o province_n all_o nation_n all_o university_n all_o bysshop_n and_o general_o all_o man_n live_v learned_a and_o unlearned_a good_a and_o bad_a pastor_n and_o people_n against_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o former_a religion_n against_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o you_o foolish_o suppose_v to_o have_v be_v the_o protestant_n howsoever_o against_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o world_n before_o they_o maintain_v to_o that_o time_n by_o father_n write_n and_o authority_n by_o the_o force_n and_o power_n of_o clear_a succession_n in_o the_o chair_n of_o christ_n apostle_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n interpret_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o know_a saint_n by_o consent_n of_o nation_n and_o general_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o final_o by_o the_o seal_n of_o infinite_a miracle_n record_v every_o where_o and_o fresh_a in_o memory_n which_o religion_n they_o have_v see_v exercise_v in_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n with_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o have_v practise_v their_o own_o self_n yet_o this_o you_o make_v a_o company_n of_o silly_a people_n to_o believe_v on_o your_o word_n 4.14_o isa_n 59.21_o io_n 14.16_o ephes_n 4.14_o against_o a_o world_n of_o eye_n witness_n against_o all_o rhe_n man_n of_o that_o age_n yea_o against_o god_n covenant_n with_o his_o church_n and_o against_o the_o express_a promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n third_z chapter_n further_a confirmation_n that_o the_o company_n of_o christian_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o bysshop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o church_n 19_o the_o former_a argument_n because_o i_o know_v you_o will_v strive_v what_o you_o can_v to_o cavil_v at_o it_o i_o will_v second_v with_o another_o take_v out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o divines_n and_o though_o i_o loathe_v to_o rehearse_v their_o foul_a speech_n and_o error_n against_o the_o church_n and_o her_o doctrine_n yet_o some_o of_o they_o here_o i_o will_v set_v in_o your_o way_n desire_v the_o
catholic_a reader_n to_o turn_v his_o eye_n aside_o a_o while_n till_o they_o be_v pass_v i_o will_v begin_v before_o luther_n when_o our_o church_n general_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o true_a by_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o her_o doctrine_n believe_v and_o will_v go_v upward_o to_o see_v whether_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o man_n for_o the_o general_a acknowledgement_n of_o our_o church_n and_o doctrine_n by_o the_o christian_a world_n will_v reach_v to_o s._n gregory_n time_n or_o no_o from_o thence_o to_o proceed_v afterward_o to_o the_o apostle_n with_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o doctrine_n will_v be_v easy_a first_o therefore_o by_o your_o learned_a man_n it_o be_v confess_v that_o papistry_n to_o use_v arg._n 5_o your_o word_n be_v the_o general_a religion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n before_o luther_n come_v in_o so_o much_o that_o 354._o that_o tota_n occidentalis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la defendit_fw-la quicquid_fw-la impietatum_fw-la detestamur_fw-la caluin_n resp_n ad_fw-la versip_n p._n 354._o caluin_n affirm_v all_o the_o western_a church_n to_o have_v defend_v it_o and_o 141._o and_o discessionem_fw-la à_fw-la toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la facere_fw-la coacti_fw-la sumus_fw-la id._n ep._n 141._o that_o his_o separation_n be_v from_o all_o the_o world_n etc._n world_n white_a defence_n c._n 37._o p._n 136._o the_o papacy_n or_o article_n wherein_o we_o refuse_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o leprosy_n etc._n etc._n white_a say_v it_o be_v a_o leprosy_n breed_v in_o the_o church_n so_o universal_o that_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a company_n of_o people_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n free_a from_o it_o they_o it_o benedict_n morgestein_n tract_n de_fw-fr eccl._n p._n 145_o and_o he_o say_v there_o further_o that_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o think_v that_o in_o the_o time_n before_o luther_n any_o have_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o luther_n shall_v receive_v it_o from_o they_o morgestern_a the_o whole_a christian_a world_n know_v that_o before_o luther_n all_o church_n be_v over_o whelm_v with_o more_o than_o cimmerian_a darkness_n 4._o darkness_n bancroft_n censure_n c._n 4._o bancroft_n the_o priest_n and_o all_o the_o people_n too_o be_v drown_v in_o the_o filth_n of_o popery_n from_o top_n to_o toe_n luk._n toe_n jewel_n serm_n on_o the_o 11._o c._n luk._n jewel_n the_o whole_a world_n people_n priest_n and_o prince_n be_v over_o whelm_v with_o ignorance_n all_o school_n priest_n bysshop_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n be_v by_o oath_n oblige_v to_o the_o pope_n 49._o pope_n daniel_n camierus_fw-la ep_n 49._o camierꝰ_n error_n possess_v not_o one_o little_a part_n or_o other_o but_o apostasy_n avert_v the_o whole_a body_n from_o christ_n 684._o christ_n brocard_n in_o c._n 2._o apoc._n fol._n 41._o cognitio_fw-la christi_fw-la defuit_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la &_o singulis_fw-la suis_fw-la membris_fw-la whit_n cont._n 4._o q_o 5._o c._n 3._o p._n 684._o brocard_n when_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o first_o assault_v make_v upon_o the_o papacy_n be_v approve_v in_o luther_n the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n be_v want_v in_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o his_o member_n i_o whittaker_n in_o time_n past_o no_o religion_n but_o the_o papistical_a have_v place_n in_o the_o church_n and._n est_fw-la and._n id._n cont._n 2._o q._n 3._o p._n 467._o per_fw-la omnes_fw-la visibiles_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la grassata_fw-la est_fw-la that_o antichristian_a plague_n have_v go_v through_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o visible_a church_n thus_o in_o general_n to_o run_v through_o the_o particular_n be_v infinite_a they_o say_v est_fw-la say_v luther_n serm_n de_fw-fr simulacr_n fol_z 277._o altero_fw-la abusu_fw-la imaginum_fw-la totus_fw-la orbis_fw-la oppletus_fw-la est_fw-la the_o whole_a world_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o abuse_n of_o image_n that_o arbitrio_fw-la that_o calu_n 2._o instit_fw-la c_o 2._o §._o 4._o ad_fw-la vulgus_fw-la etiam_fw-la ipsum_fw-la omnes_fw-la hoc_fw-la principio_fw-la imbuti_fw-la sunt_fw-la praeditum_fw-la esse_fw-la hominem_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la all_o to_o the_o very_a common_a people_n be_v imbue_v with_o this_o principle_n that_o man_n have_v free_a will_n that_o deletum_fw-la that_o confess_v aug._n c._n 20._o fateri_fw-la omnes_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la fidei_fw-la iustitia_fw-la fuisse_fw-la altissimum_fw-la silentium_fw-la magburg_n praefat_fw-la cenur_n 13._o extincta_fw-la est_fw-la doctrina_fw-la de_fw-fr fide_fw-la tantùm_fw-la sine_fw-la operibus_fw-la calu._n resp_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n p._n 125._o dogma_fw-la istud_fw-la the_o iustificatione_n per_fw-la solam_fw-la fidem_fw-la quod_fw-la in_fw-la religione_fw-la summum_fw-la erat_fw-la dicimus_fw-la fuisse_fw-la à_fw-la vobis_fw-la ex_fw-la hominum_fw-la memoria_fw-la deletum_fw-la the_o principal_a point_n of_o religion_n justification_n by_o faith_n only_o be_v blot_v out_o of_o memory_n that_o invaluit_fw-la that_o bucerus_n li_n d●_n concord_n p._n 660._o hic_fw-la error_n the_o real_a praesentia_fw-la loquor_fw-la apud_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la christianos_n invaluit_fw-la the_o error_n so_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o real_a presence_n prevail_v among_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o world_n that_o rom_n that_o gualt_n in_o praefat_fw-la com._n in_o ep_v ad_fw-la rom_n all_o the_o world_n err_v in_o that_o article_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n that_o statuerint_fw-la that_o calu._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 18._o §._o 18._o missae_fw-la abominatio_fw-la in_o calice_n aureo_fw-la propinata_fw-la omnes_fw-la reges_fw-la terrae_fw-la &_o populos_fw-la à_fw-la summo_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la novissimum_fw-la sic_fw-la inebriavit_fw-la ut_fw-la proram_fw-la &_o puppim_fw-la suae_fw-la salutis_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la una_fw-la statuerint_fw-la the_o mass_n make_v drink_v all_o the_o king_n and_o people_n of_o the_o earth_n from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o that_o 68_o that_o luth._o captivit_fw-la babil_n fol._n 68_o scarce_o any_o thing_n be_v more_o believe_v than_o that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o 130_o that_o calu._n respon_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n p._n 130_o all_o endeavour_v to_o merit_v to_o satisfy_v etc._n etc._n and_o to_o sum_n all_o up_o in_o a_o word_n they_o confess_v our_o religion_n to_o have_v prevail_v over_o their_o suppose_a church_n and_o religion_n so_o far_o 306._o far_o luth._o capt._n babil_n fol._n 77._o id._n in_o psalm_n grad_v fol._n 568_o &_o in_o 2._o gal._n fol._n 306._o that_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v abolish_v and_o extinguish_v that_o explosa_fw-la that_o magburg_n praefat_fw-la centur._n 5._o join_a calu._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 2._o §._o 2._o sub_fw-la papismo_fw-la doctrina_fw-la citra_fw-la quam_fw-la christianismus_n non_fw-la constat_fw-la tota_fw-la sepul●a_fw-la &_o explosa_fw-la under_o the_o papacy_n there_o be_v a_o extreme_a abolish_n of_o the_o true_a protestant_a religion_n and_o the_o divine_a word_n that_o under_o the_o papacy_n the_o doctrine_n without_o which_o protestant_a christianity_n do_v not_o subsist_v be_v all_o reject_v and_o bury_v this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o our_o church_n before_o luther_n and_o not_o for_o a_o small_a time_n but_o for_o nine_o hundred_o year_n yeaven_n from_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n and_o gregory_n the_o great_a all_o the_o know_a church_n in_o the_o world_n all_o that_o time_n frequent_v and_o believe_v mass_n confess_v to_o priest_n pray_v to_o saint_n and_o for_o the_o dead_a believe_v justification_n by_o work_n do_v in_o grace_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o they_o satisfaction_n tradition_n religious_a vow_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v with_o the_o christian_a world_n general_o all_o that_o tyme._n this_o you_o may_v know_v particular_o from_o time_n to_o time_n out_o of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n if_o you_o will_v read_v they_o but_o of_o history_n i_o be_o not_o to_o speak_v now_o let_v we_o go_v on_o with_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o man_n for_o the_o general_a acknowledgement_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o general_a poverty_n or_o not_o existencie_n of_o your_o suppose_a church_n speak_v perkins_n during_o the_o space_n of_o nine_o hundred_o year_n the_o popish_a heresy_n have_v spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a earth_n bale_n from_o phocas_n who_o live_v a._n 602._o till_o the_o renew_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v for_o that_o space_n among_o idiotes_n and_o in_o lurk_a hole_n and_o after_o gregory_n the_o purity_n of_o protestant_a doctrine_n perissh_v 105._o perissh_v powell_n confid_v pap._n reas_fw-la p._n 105._o powell_n i_o grant_v that_o from_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 605._o the_o professant_a company_n of_o popery_n have_v be_v very_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a 36._o conspicuous_a fulke_n ans_fw-fr count●_n cath._n p_o 36._o fulke_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n come_v in_o and_o prevail_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 607._o and_o so_o universal_o that_o the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n with_o the_o church_n flight_n into_o the_o wilderness_n be_v a._n 607._o millena●io_fw-la 607._o hutter_n de_fw-fr sacrif_n missat_fw-la p_o 377._o libenter_fw-la concedo_fw-la idolomaniam_fw-la pontificiam_fw-la cvius_fw
verum_fw-la est_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la missaticum_fw-la torum_fw-la penè_fw-la terrarum_fw-la orbem_fw-la invasisse_fw-la praesertim_fw-la superiore_fw-la proximo_fw-la millena●io_fw-la hutter_n i_o grant_v willing_o that_o the_o papist_n idolatry_n have_v invade_v all_o most_o all_o the_o world_n especial_o these_o last_o thousand_o year_n reader_n year_n simon_n voyon_n catal._n doct._n in_o ep_n to_o the_o reader_n simon_n voyon_n when_o boniface_n be_v stall_v in_o the_o papal_a throne_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v over_o whelm_v in_o the_o dregs_n of_o antichristian_a filthiness_n with_o superstition_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o pope_n then_o be_v that_o universal_a apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n foretell_v by_o paul_n stupidiores_fw-la paul_n bibliander_n orat_fw-la ad_fw-la princip_n germ._n c._n 72._o apud_fw-la caluinoturc_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o a_o morte_fw-la gregorij_fw-la magni_fw-la ponimus_fw-la esse_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la notum_fw-la clarissimum_fw-la &_o extta_fw-it omnem_fw-la dubitationem_fw-la quod_fw-la papa_n romanus_n sit_fw-la antichristus_fw-la qui_fw-la suis_fw-la abominationibus_fw-la blasphe●iis_fw-la &_o idololatriis_fw-la omnes_fw-la regesterrae_fw-la &_o populos_fw-la à_fw-la summo_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la novissimum_fw-la sic_fw-la inebriavit_fw-la ut_fw-la brutis_fw-la ipsis_fw-la essent_fw-la stupidiores_fw-la bibliander_n it_o be_v of_o itself_o know_v most_o clear_a and_o out_o of_o all_o question_n that_o from_o the_o death_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v antichrist_n who_o with_o his_o abomination_n blasphemy_n and_o idolatry_n so_o make_v drink_v all_o king_n and_o people_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a that_o they_o be_v more_o stupid_a than_o very_a beast_n etc._n beast_n hospinian_n hist_o sacram._n l._n 2_o p._n 157._o gregorij_fw-la magni_fw-la aetate_fw-la omne_fw-la superstitionis_fw-la &_o idololatriae_fw-la genus_fw-la etc._n etc._n hospinian_n in_o the_o age_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a all_o kind_n of_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n have_v as_o a_o sea_n overflow_v almost_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n not_o only_o none_o resist_v but_o rather_o all_o help_a and_o add_v thereunto_o what_o force_n they_o can_v thus_o i_o have_v by_o protestant_n assign_v to_o i_o the_o space_n wherein_o papistry_n have_v be_v general_a and_o the_o suppose_a protestancie_n suppress_v i_o mean_v from_o luther_n upward_o to_o boniface_n and_o to_o the_o death_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a 20._o now_o that_o the_o religion_n general_a in_o the_o world_n then_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o be_v general_a in_o the_o world_n in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a who_o die_v but_o three_o yearet_n before_o boniface_n be_v manifest_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o world_n of_o eye_n witness_n that_o be_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o kingdom_n nation_n scholar_n pastor_n people_n by_o the_o testimony_n i_o say_v of_o all_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n and_o of_o our_o religion_n as_o you_o hear_v your_o divines_n confess_v have_v most_o of_o they_o see_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o religion_n in_o all_o the_o world_n in_o s._n gregory_n time_n and_o can_v not_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o fact_n subject_a to_o the_o eye_n every_o where_o as_o go_v to_o mass_n pray_v to_o 266._o to_o perkins_n expos_fw-fr creed_n pag._n 266._o 65._o 266._o bale_n centur._n 1.74_o id._n p._n 65._o saint_n confession_n to_o priest_n adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n etc._n etc._n they_o have_v also_o all_o mean_n that_o man_n can_v have_v to_o be_v inform_v certain_o of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o world_n in_o s._n gregory_n time_n book_n record_n relation_n eye_n to_o see_v the_o practice_n immediate_o ear_n to_o hear_v what_o they_o say_v instruction_n baptism_n bible_n order_n all_o they_o have_v from_o they_o immediate_o and_o the_o matter_n touch_v they_o all_o and_o each_o in_o particular_a more_o than_o land_n life_n or_o whatsoever_o else_o can_v be_v dear_a to_o man_n i_o may_v confirm_v this_o further_a out_o of_o god_n assistance_n to_o the_o church_n out_o of_o which_o it_o come_v inevitablie_o that_o neither_o the_o former_a religion_n can_v abrupt_o stop_v as_o you_o imagine_v and_o the_o faith_n fail_v the_o church_n fall_v on_o the_o sudden_a the_o church_n i_o say_v diffuse_v through_o the_o world_n nor_o all_o know_a christian_a church_n in_o succeed_a time_n or_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n general_o err_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o the_o great_a moment_n in_o the_o discern_a the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o true_a church_n of_o former_a time_n leave_v you_o therefore_o to_o deal_v with_o babe_n who_o you_o may_v peradventure_o make_v believe_v on_o your_o bare_a word_n without_o evidence_n against_o history_n against_o the_o promise_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o against_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n that_o whilst_o all_o be_v a_o sleep_n it_o seem_v by_o your_o dream_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o world_n be_v general_o change_v in_o boniface_n his_o time_n after_o the_o death_n of_o gregory_n i_o take_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o world_n of_o people_n upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o nation_n than_o christian_a that_o it_o be_v not_o but_o that_o the_o religion_n than_o currant_n be_v the_o religion_n currant_n in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a 22._o now_o that_o s._n gregory_n have_v communion_n with_o all_o the_o world_n every_o one_o know_v by_o his_o epistiles_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o corinth_n siracusa_n greg._n extant_a inter_fw-la op._n d_o greg._n constantinople_n alexandria_n carthage_n numidia_n jerusalem_n arabia_n antioch_n arles_n vienna_n etc._n etc._n you_o grant_v also_o that_o he_o do_v communicate_v with_o the_o former_a age_n and_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o they_o which_o be_v also_o clear_a by_o the_o consent_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o his_o time_n who_o believe_v that_o he_o and_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o precedent_a age_n and_o have_v best_a mean_n to_o know_v it_o the_o same_o church_n and_o religion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o leo_n the_o great_a be_v also_o universal_a and_o this_o likewise_o out_o of_o his_o writing_n may_v be_v prove_v the_o universality_n i_o say_v of_o leo_n his_o communion_n be_v know_v clear_o by_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n je_fw-fr je_fw-fr open_fw-mi v._n je_fw-fr france_n thessalonica_n vienna_n sicily_n campania_n tuscia_n alexandria_n antioch_n constantinople_n jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v include_v and_o to_o the_o world_n make_v know_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n if_o you_o will_v ascend_v hiegh_o with_o this_o universality_n go_v up_o to_o syluester_n time_n and_o his_o communion_n with_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n you_o have_v in_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n and_o further_o i_o think_v you_o will_v not_o press_v i_o though_o i_o can_v further_o name_n s._n paul_n witness_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n that_o it_o be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n 22._o have_v be_v long_o in_o the_o former_a argument_n and_o the_o long_a because_o i_o will_v see_v whether_o you_o can_v make_v the_o like_a in_o all_o respect_n for_o the_o universality_n of_o your_o church_n and_o doctrine_n arg._n 6_o there_o currant_n among_o you_o i_o will_v now_o be_v short_a in_o the_o next_o which_o i_o will_v frame_v out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n too_o not_o so_o much_o for_o their_o authority_n which_o i_o esteem_v not_o as_o to_o stop_v your_o mouth_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v this_o bright-man_n in_o his_o apocalyps_n say_v that_o the_o church_n protestant_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n to_o wit_n 1260._o year_n that_o than_o the_o suppose_a protestancie_n go_v into_o the_o desert_n 191._o bright_n in_o cap._n 11._o &_o ●2_n apoc._n id._n p._n 577._o broc_n on_o revel_v fol._n 110_o 12●_n nap._n revel_v p._n 68_o see_v also_o p._n 191._o and_o that_o ever_o since_o antichrist_n so_o he_o call_v the_o pope_n have_v reign_v brocard_n say_v also_o the_o church_n suppose_v protestant_n be_v tread_v down_o and_o oppress_v by_o the_o papacy_n even_o from_o syluester_n time_n to_o those_o time_n viz._n 1260._o year_n and_o napper_n say_v between_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 300._o and_o 316._o the_o antichristian_a and_o papistical_a reign_n begin_v reign_v universal_o and_o without_o any_o debateable_a contradiction_n 1260_o year_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n possess_v the_o outward_a visible_a church_n of_o christian_n all_o that_o tyme._n and_o for_o the_o suppose_a protestant_n church_n and_o doctrine_n he_o say_v god_n true_a church_n most_o certain_o abide_v so_o long_a latent_fw-la we_o therefore_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o these_o protestant_n be_v universal_a long_o before_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a i_o know_v that_o you_o object_n the_o primacy_n to_o
all_o time_n it_o have_v have_v because_o the_o roman_a see_n or_o bishop_n as_o i_o have_v show_v have_v communicate_v with_o all_o those_o council_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o each_o of_o those_o council_n be_v universal_a in_o the_o time_n wherein_o it_o be_v hold_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n from_o whence_o those_o bysshop_n come_v which_o be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o baronius_n and_o by_o this_o we_o see_v cleerlie_o the_o great_a amplitude_n of_o go●●_n church_n whereof_o the_o prophet_n do_v speak_v who_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o book_n i_o have_v cite_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o christian_a communion_n that_o can_v equal_v it_o all_o this_o time_n or_o be_v any_o way_n answerable_a to_o the_o description_n there_o put_v down_o i_o will_v go_v further_o yet_o and_o put_v your_o eye_n to_o it_o as_o it_o have_v be_v in_o each_o time_n but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o take_v the_o pain_n a_o general_a view_n be_v all_o i_o do_v intend_v and_o this_o i_o have_v exhibit_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v see_v and_o know_v by_o her_o universality_n in_o time_n and_o nation_n this_o universality_n be_v see_v in_o the_o general_n communion_n of_o christian_a church_n this_o general_a communion_n be_v see_v in_o general_n council_n and_o these_o council_n you_o may_v look_v on_o when_o you_o will_n hereafter_o i_o will_v examine_v whether_o this_o individual_a church_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v have_v divine_a assistance_n and_o how_o far_o but_o here_o i_o abstract_n from_o that_o question_n and_o if_o you_o grant_v this_o to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o of_o necessity_n you_o must_v i_o have_v all_o i_o intend_v in_o this_o book_n and_o for_o this_o purpose_n only_o have_v bring_v these_o few_o motive_n omit_v infinite_a other_o which_o every_o where_o you_o may_v find_v 30._o for_o that_o which_o i_o have_v allege_v out_o of_o counsel_n i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o it_o be_v their_o communion_n only_o which_o here_o i_o urge_v and_o the_o tome_n of_o counsel_n i_o suppose_v you_o have_v in_o your_o library_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n i_o will_v speak_v afterward_o if_o you_o will_v go_v further_o yet_o and_o see_v all_o the_o bysshoprick_n of_o the_o church_n miraei_n notitia_fw-la episcopat_fw-la aub._n miraei_n either_o in_o elder_a time_n or_o now_o take_v miraeus_n and_o read_v they_o there_o and_o mark_v also_o in_o he_o those_o which_o be_v erect_v since_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o new_a world_n if_o you_o will_v see_v the_o particular_a demonstration_n of_o each_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n out_o of_o antiquity_n and_o consequent_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o world_n in_o our_o religion_n and_o cause_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o this_o day_n look_v in_o cocciꝰ_n who_o have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o declare_v it_o in_o two_o large_a tome_n and_o there_o be_v undoubted_a author_n of_o every_o age_n though_o here_o and_o there_o may_v be_v some_o also_o which_o be_v not_o undoubted_a work_n which_o the_o learned_a ad_fw-la such_o as_o do_v write_v controversy_n be_v to_o discern_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o his_o purpose_n to_o have_v digest_v in_o that_o sort_n what_o he_o have_v read_v verb._n collat._n doctr_n cath_z ac_fw-la prot._n cum_fw-la expr_fw-la script_n verb._n if_o you_o will_v see_v the_o consent_n of_o our_o church_n and_o her_o doctrine_n to_o god_n word_n and_o your_o opposition_n to_o it_o read_v the_o conference_n of_o my_o lo._n of_o chalcedon_n if_o you_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o in_o which_o and_o how_o in_o particular_a they_o be_v verify_v read_v bosius_n you_o have_v it_o there_o and_o final_o if_o your_o desire_n be_v to_o see_v the_o act_n and_o monument_n of_o our_o church_n in_o particular_a from_o year_n to_o year_n you_o have_v they_o in_o baronius_n who_o have_v make_v in_o this_o kind_a a_o ocular_a demonstration_n of_o it_o and_o thereby_o of_o our_o church_n in_o the_o former_a book_n you_o have_v other_o proof_n of_o our_o church_n and_o in_o the_o next_o you_o shall_v have_v more_o for_o the_o point_n which_o i_o handle_v in_o these_o three_o book_n be_v connect_v and_o unite_v so_o that_o one_o maintain_v the_o other_o and_o you_o will_v find_v the_o book_n so_o to_o conspire_v against_o you_o that_o when_o you_o think_v you_o have_v answer_v any_o one_o of_o they_o the_o other_o two_o will_v oppose_v themselves_o to_o your_o answer_n and_o save_v i_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o intelligent_a reader_n the_o labour_n of_o write_v any_o more_o when_o you_o be_v about_o your_o answer_n if_o you_o will_v needs_o be_v answer_v and_o be_v think_v with_o yourself_o how_o i_o may_v oppose_v it_o out_o of_o the_o ground_n lay_v down_o in_o these_o three_o book_n you_o will_v guess_v whether_o i_o have_v speak_v within_o my_o compass_n and_o if_o you_o spend_v your_o judgement_n more_o sudden_o your_o conscience_n i_o believe_v will_v then_o retract_v it_o the_o four_o chapter_n the_o jew_n reject_v 29._o i_o care_v not_o if_o i_o leave_v you_o now_o consider_v what_o i_o say_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n whilst_o i_o look_v further_o into_o more_o remote_a time_n on_o the_o beginning_n of_o our_o church_n dispute_v i_o need_v not_o because_o neither_o the_o time_n present_a nor_o the_o person_n into_o who_o hand_n this_o will_v come_v do_v require_v it_o and_o the_o cause_n do_v contain_v such_o a_o argument_n of_o truth_n that_o simple_o to_o relate_v we_o be_v to_o refute_v other_o and_o a_o relation_n serve_v my_o turn_n for_o the_o connection_n of_o my_o discourse_n in_o all_o nation_n and_o at_o all_o yeaven_n the_o most_o obscure_a time_n it_o have_v be_v a_o general_a notion_n a_o faith_n transcendent_a a_o common_a and_o most_o constant_a principle_n that_o there_o be_v a_o deity_n so_o father_n teach_v their_o child_n so_o philosopher_n do_v prove_v in_o school_n so_o the_o world_n variety_n and_o order_n and_o beauty_n and_o majesty_n do_v proclaim_v abroad_o no_o man_n so_o simple_a but_o know_v he_o have_v a_o cause_n and_o each_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n all_o the_o species_n all_o mankind_n have_v a_o cause_n each_o subordinate_a cause_n have_v a_o cause_n and_o the_o collection_n of_o subordinate_a and_o depend_v cause_n do_v argue_v the_o existencie_n of_o a_o high_a power_n supereminent_a unto_o the_o collection_n on_o which_o power_n they_o all_o depend_v which_o efficient_a be_v none_o of_o the_o dependent_a cause_n be_v whole_o without_o a_o cause_n and_o therefore_o have_v of_o itself_o a_o infinite_a necessity_n in_o be_v and_o in_o all_o that_o appertayne_v thereunto_o moreover_o because_o infinite_a in_o existencie_n and_o be_v all_o wisdom_n all_o power_n all_o perfection_n be_v in_o it_o and_o this_o immaterial_a intellectual_a immovable_a omnipotent_a all-commaundinge_a creator_n we_o call_v god_n who_o as_o he_o do_v unspeakeablie_o exceed_v all_o so_o be_v he_o in_o like_a manner_n incomprehensible_a of_o all_o and_o live_v eternal_o in_o the_o height_n and_o fullnes_n of_o bliss_n comprehend_v and_o enjoy_v his_o own_o substance_n which_o be_v the_o root_n and_o fountain_n of_o existencie_n the_o original_n and_o universal_a verity_n infinite_a way_n infinite_a and_o a_o most_o pure_a and_o holy_a goodness_n unbounded_a every_o way_n 30._o here_o the_o atheist_n a_o man_n that_o intricate_v himself_o in_o circle_n and_o infinity_n to_o deny_v that_o which_o he_o can_v avoid_v god_n will_v interrupt_v my_o discourse_n and_o except_v that_o all_o subordinate_a efficient_a cause_n depend_v not_o upon_o any_o determinate_a thing_n because_o they_o may_v either_o run_v the_o round_n or_o ascend_v ever_o without_o a_o end_n this_o fellow_n look_v in_o time_n to_o begette_v his_o father_n and_o exchange_n relation_n with_o he_o and_o to_o be_v adans_n great_a grandfather_n infinite_a time_n and_o as_o many_o time_n more_o adam_n son_n but_o his_o ignorance_n be_v very_o childish_a each_o man_n have_v a_o cause_n as_o i_o say_v and_o therefore_o the_o whole_a nature_n or_o species_n have_v a_o cause_n for_o if_o any_o have_v not_o he_o wear_v not_o of_o the_o same_o species_n or_o nature_n with_o the_o rest_n he_o wear_v not_o a_o pure_a man_n the_o whole_a collection_n or_o multitude_n therefore_o of_o man_n the_o very_a nature_n and_o the_o species_n do_v depend_v on_o some_o cause_n efficient_a which_o likewise_o depend_v on_o a_o other_o or_o be_v independent_a and_o immovable_a if_o independent_a and_o immovable_a it_o have_v be_v by_o itself_o preciselie_o without_o any_o cause_n condition_n or_o contingencie_n what_o soever_o and_o therefore_o have_v a_o pure_a unlimited_a and_o so_o a_o infinite_a necessity_n in_o be_v and_o this_o be_v god_n if_o the_o
19.21_o matth._n 10.100.12_o and_o certain_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v to_o himself_o to_o his_o adversary_n to_o his_o disciple_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o gentile_n to_o the_o church_n 42._o his_o miracle_n be_v many_o do_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o enemy_n do_v oft_o with_o a_o word_n he_o cure_v the_o sick_a give_v sight_n unto_o the_o blind_a and_o life_n to_o those_o be_v dead_a 7._o matt._n 9_o luk_n 7._o and_o be_v so_o powerful_a herein_o that_o he_o give_v his_o disciple_n power_n to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o so_o far_o that_o their_o touch_n their_o word_n their_o clothes_n yea_o and_o shadow_n there_o follow_v miraculous_a effect_n 5._o act._n 5._o neither_o be_v his_o life_n only_o but_o this_o death_n likewise_o full_a of_o miracle_n in_o so_o much_o that_o nature_n herself_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o horror_n of_o that_o day_n where_o in_o he_o on_o who_o she_o depend_v die_v the_o earth_n tremble_v the_o rock_n burst_v in_o sunder_o the_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n split_v grave_n do_v surrender_v their_o dead_a 23._o matt._n 27._o luk._n 23._o the_o sun_n be_v eclipse_v strange_o and_o a_o general_a darkness_n overspr_v the_o whole_a earth_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o a_o world_n of_o people_n and_o his_o body_n bury_v he_o rise_v such_o be_v his_o divine_a power_n from_o death_n have_v thereby_o pay_v the_o ransom_n for_o mankind_n 15._o mat._n 27._o luk._n 24._o 1._o cor._n 15._o and_o be_v the_o three_o day_n again_o alive_a and_o appear_v and_o converse_n and_o give_v instruction_n power_n and_o commission_n to_o his_o disciple_n and_o last_o in_o their_o sight_n do_v ascend_v be_v ascend_v he_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o visible_a manner_n unto_o they_o all_o assemble_v whereby_o they_o receive_v a_o inward_a testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n he_o have_v teach_v 2._o act._n 1._o &_o 2._o and_o be_v so_o confirm_v and_o encourage_v by_o the_o power_n of_o this_o spirit_n that_o they_o begin_v confident_o notwithstanding_o the_o jew_n threat_n and_o opposition_n to_o diwlge_v his_o doctrine_n 43._o and_o behold_v peter_n 3_o supremun_n &_o antiquissimun_fw-la theologorum_fw-la stigium_fw-la s._n diony_n diu_fw-la nom_fw-fr c_o 3_o of_o a_o ignorant_a fisherman_n be_v now_o become_v the_o prince_n and_o head_n of_o divine_v and_o maintain_v with_o the_o victory_n by_o the_o know_a success_n of_o many_o age_n universal_o now_o manifest_a the_o cause_n of_o jesus_n christ_n against_o all_o the_o world_n he_o be_v also_o so_o good_a a_o orator_n and_o on_o the_o sudden_a that_o with_o his_o first_o speech_n and_o this_o make_v without_o study_n 2._o act._n 2._o the_o win_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o adversary_n three_o thousand_o to_o the_o faith_n for_o the_o better_a diwlge_v of_o the_o gospel_n in_o all_o nation_n these_o fisherman_n have_v also_o bestow_v on_o they_o by_o their_o master_n the_o guifte_n of_o tongue_n and_o instant_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v utter_v in_o all_o language_n the_o parthian_n and_o median_n and_o elamites_n and_o those_o which_o inhabit_v mesopotomia_fw-la judea_n and_o capadocia_n pontus_n and_o asia_n 2._o act._n 2._o phrygia_n and_o pamphilia_n egypt_n and_o the_o part_n of_o lybia_n that_o be_v about_o cyrene_n and_o stranger_n of_o rome_n jews_n also_o and_o proselyte_n and_o cretensian_o and_o arabian_n all_o with_o admiration_n and_o amazement_n hear_v their_o own_o language_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o unlettered_a galilean_n o_o heavenly_a master_n o_o powerful_a and_o divine_a spirit_n o_o wondrous_a school_n o_o happy_a scholar_n the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v a_o great_a saint_n fill_v a_o boy_n give_v to_o the_o harp_n and_o make_v he_o a_o psalmist_n ezech._n ●_o gregor_n sup_v ezech._n he_o fill_v a_o abstinent_a child_n and_o make_v he_o the_o judge_n of_o elder_n he_o fill_v a_o neatheard_n and_o make_v he_o a_o prophet_n he_o fill_v a_o fisherman_n and_o make_v he_o prince_n of_o apostle_n he_o fill_v a_o persecutor_n and_o make_v he_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n he_o fill_v a_o publican_n and_o make_v he_o a_o evangelist_n add_v here_o that_o he_o fill_v a_o company_n of_o unlearned_a man_n and_o make_v they_o linguist_n divines_n preacher_n and_o apostle_n 44._o the_o disciple_n thus_o miraculous_o furnish_v with_o knowledge_n and_o tongue_n to_o the_o amazement_n and_o confusion_n of_o all_o opponent_n do_v according_a to_o their_o master_n commission_n resolute_o set_v on_o their_o great_a task_n which_o be_v to_o carry_v the_o good_a tiding_n of_o the_o world_n redemption_n by_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o all_o nation_n and_o disperse_v themselves_o into_o diverse_a part_n do_v preach_v every_o where_o 19_o mar._n 19_o our_o lord_n cooperate_a and_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n with_o sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o now_o the_o world_n begin_v to_o turn_v from_o vice_n to_o virtue_n from_o superstition_n to_o religion_n from_o idolatry_n to_o god_n again_o 45._o the_o enemy_n of_o virtue_n and_o of_o all_o good_a proceed_n who_o affect_v divine_a honour_n fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o continue_v his_o desire_n think_v to_o compass_v it_o here_o on_o earth_n perceave_v of_o the_o motion_n now_o begin_v and_o see_v his_o minister_n contemn_v his_o idol_n overthrow_v unclean_a spirit_n command_v out_o of_o man_n and_o a_o general_a reformation_n in_o the_o way_n begin_v to_o storm_n and_o raise_v a_o most_o bitter_a persecution_n against_o the_o church_n wherein_o by_o his_o instigation_n jew_n gentile_n and_o heretic_n with_o wit_n power_n and_o malice_n be_v to_o oppose_v she_o and_o the_o world_n make_v a_o theatre_n of_o the_o combat_n 46._o the_o particular_n be_v to_o long_o for_o this_o place_n and_o therefore_o i_o remit_v you_o to_o baronius_n to_o read_v there_o what_o the_o christian_n do_v suffer_v in_o the_o time_n of_o nero_n domitian_n traian_n marcus_n aurelius_n and_o sueverus_n commander_n of_o the_o roman_a world_n when_o confess_v the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o all_o place_n on_o all_o occasion_n before_o all_o kind_n of_o people_n their_o number_n do_v increase_v daily_o in_o the_o face_n of_o torment_n and_o the_o sword_n of_o persecution_n prevail_v nothing_o but_o to_o lay_v open_a their_o constancy_n to_o the_o world_n province_n land_n castle_n fortress_n tent_n camp_n 37_o tertull._n apol._n ad_fw-la gent._n c._n 37_o court_n palace_n senate_n market_n place_n all_o be_v full_a and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n discover_v itself_o further_o they_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v outstreched_a into_o all_o corner_n believe_v in_o all_o place_n reverence_v of_o all_o nation_n every_o where_o reign_v adore_v every_o where_n after_o the_o forename_a follow_v other_o most_o bitter_a persecution_n by_o decius_n dioclesian_n maximinian_n wherein_o the_o priest_n be_v torment_v the_o church_n pull_v down_o the_o book_n burn_v and_o the_o fury_n be_v such_o be_v with_o extreme_a violence_n bear_v into_o all_o province_n city_n town_n in_o the_o roman_a world_n that_o it_o threaten_v a_o universal_a extirpation_n yeaven_n to_o the_o last_o christian_a man_n and_o yet_o can_v not_o the_o number_n of_o believer_n be_v diminish_v we_o read_v of_o seventeen_o thousand_o martyr_v in_o one_o month_n and_o that_o in_o egypt_n a_o part_n of_o africa_n there_o be_v 144000._o put_v to_o death_n and_o 700000._o banish_v from_o the_o same_o place_n in_o diocletians_n tyme._n spondan_n read_v euseb_n baron_fw-fr spondan_n by_o which_o if_o we_o guess_v at_o the_o multitude_n which_o do_v suffer_v in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ten_o persecution_n in_o all_o the_o world_n the_o number_n will_v appear_v infinite_a and_o our_o faith_n be_v confirm_v with_o a_o world_n of_o blood_n so_o earnest_o do_v the_o devil_n by_o these_o tyrannical_a cruel_a mean_n oppose_v the_o church_n which_o notwithstanding_o when_o all_o be_v do_v be_v great_a than_o before_o constant_n constant_n in_o so_o much_o that_o christianity_n get_v the_o empire_n and_o then_o secure_o spread_v itself_o and_o rome_n as_o leo_n the_o great_a true_o say_v apost_n s._n leo_n serm_n 1._o de_fw-fr nat._n apost_n be_v make_v the_o see_v of_o peter_n come_v to_o rule_v more_o universallie_o by_o divine_a religion_n then_o by_o temporal_a sovereignty_n for_o though_o enlarge_v by_o many_o victory_n she_o have_v extend_v the_o right_n of_o her_o empire_n by_o sea_n and_o land_n yet_o that_o which_o the_o toil_n of_o war_n subdue_v be_v less_o they_o that_o which_o christian_a peace_n do_v bring_v under_o 46._o out_o of_o this_o admirable_a plantation_n of_o christianity_n and_o so_o powerful_a a_o proposition_n and_o persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n unto_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v esteem_v above_o all_o thing_n else_o dear_a otherwise_o to_o man_n the_o father_n make_v excellent_a discourse_n to_o show_v the_o divine_a power_n of_o our_o saviour_n
a_o part_n and_o distinct_a that_o such_o as_o read_v our_o paper_n may_v know_v when_o one_o matter_n be_v end_v or_o agree_v upon_o and_o do_v not_o thrust_v other_o thing_n in_o here_o if_o you_o grant_v it_o say_v so_o if_o you_o do_v not_o speak_v direct_o to_o this_o point_n in_o this_o place_n and_o of_o no_o other_o i_o will_v not_o hear_v of_o err_a or_o not_o err_v in_o fundamental_n or_o not_o fundamental_n i_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o that_o it_o shall_v have_v a_o place_n a_o part_n i_o look_v only_o which_o be_v the_o church_n answer_v to_o the_o description_n whether_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o any_o thing_n or_o be_v not_o whether_o it_o do_v err_v actuallie_o or_o ever_o have_v actuallie_o be_v in_o error_n i_o meddle_v not_o here_o with_o that_o the_o thing_n describe_v in_o prophecy_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n the_o church_n i_o look_v for_o and_o have_v find_v she_o by_o her_o proportion_n by_o her_o face_n it_o be_v not_o you_o it_o be_v we_o the_o seven_o chapter_n wherein_o answer_n be_v give_v to_o some_o exception_n make_v against_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n the_o argument_n which_o you_o and_o your_o abotter_n make_v against_o the_o foresay_a universality_n of_o the_o church_n 12._o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccl._n c._n 12._o be_v answer_v easy_o and_o whereas_o first_o as_o donatist_n heretofore_o do_v also_o you_o plead_v for_o your_o poverty_n and_o paucity_n of_o adherentes_fw-la that_o there_o be_v few_o chozen_n and_o the_o world_n full_a of_o fool_n i_o confess_v there_o be_v to_o many_o fool_n indeed_o and_o have_v be_v ever_o if_o you_o consider_v the_o whole_a collection_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o heretic_n together_o with_o pagan_n and_o atheist_n the_o number_n whereof_o be_v infinite_a the_o world_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v full_a but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n since_o the_o catholic_a church_n notwithstanding_o spread_v itself_o into_o all_o nation_n and_o make_v some_o of_o every_o nation_n and_o those_o very_o many_o also_o wise_a many_o be_v call_v by_o the_o pastor_n by_o the_o apostle_n by_o god_n to_o christianity_n from_o all_o nation_n among_o which_o many_o though_o they_o receive_v the_o word_n and_o for_o a_o time_n do_v well_o do_v flinch_v in_o time_n of_o temptation_n and_o fall_v of_o before_o the_o end_n and_o so_o they_o be_v fool_n too_o and_o with_o the_o foolish_a virgin_n be_v shut_v out_o of_o heaven_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o there_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n some_o wise_a of_o all_o nation_n tongue_n and_o people_n more_o than_o can_v be_v number_v which_o infallible_o will_v gain_v the_o crown_n of_o glory_n 56._o an_o other_o exception_n you_o make_v against_o our_o church_n because_o it_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o all_o christian_n as_o with_o your_o congregation_n for_o example_n whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o to_o the_o church_n universality_n communion_n with_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o communion_n with_o or_o in_o all_o nation_n and_o this_o communion_n the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o rest_n adherent_a have_v with_o heretic_n we_o will_v not_o communicate_v and_o do_v herein_o follow_v the_o instruction_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o saint_n paul_n and_o accord_o the_o church_n in_o former_a time_n will_v not_o communicate_v with_o arian_n eunomian_o nestorian_n or_o with_o armenian_n grecian_n aethiopian_n or_o other_o at_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v in_o error_n neither_o be_v this_o communion_n necessary_a to_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n as_o i_o say_v before_o because_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o communicate_v with_o all_o person_n in_o the_o world_n but_o with_o all_o nation_n nor_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o church_n communion_n be_v at_o once_o in_o all_o nation_n and_o so_o continue_v but_o that_o in_o the_o compass_n of_o her_o time_n it_o be_v in_o all_o and_o thus_o be_v our_o religion_n catholic_n which_o have_v be_v in_o all_o nation_n one_o time_n or_o other_o that_o hitherto_o have_v be_v christian_n which_o can_v be_v true_o say_v of_o no_o other_o and_o by_o her_o great_a power_n of_o convert_n nation_n be_v go_v on_o to_o possess_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v on_o earth_n 56._o three_o you_o except_v against_o the_o generality_n of_o some_o council_n whereunto_o the_o greek_a church_n then_o divide_v will_v not_o come_v but_o this_o be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o the_o cause_n for_o to_o the_o generality_n of_o a_o council_n no_o more_o can_v be_v require_v possible_o for_o person_n they_o the_o presence_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o bysshope_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n since_o catholic_a pastor_n not_o heretic_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v follow_v and_o obay_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n these_o do_v succeed_v in_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o in_o they_o be_v the_o whole_a teach_v authority_n of_o the_o church-present_a unto_o the_o time_n wherein_o they_o be_v whether_o they_o be_v more_o or_o not_o so_o many_o as_o be_v some_o age_n before_o in_o particular_a to_o that_o of_o the_o grecian_n i_o answer_v that_o their_o consent_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v in_o the_o time_n they_o live_v in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o therefore_o without_o they_o the_o council_n be_v ecumenical_a for_o that_o council_n be_v ecumenical_a which_o do_v include_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n it_o be_v not_o requisite_a that_o all_o bishop_n which_o ever_o be_v shall_v be_v raise_v again_o to_o life_n to_o sit_v in_o council_n nor_o that_o such_o as_o in_o after_o age_n be_v to_o come_v shall_v be_v bear_v afore_o their_o time_n to_o make_v a_o council_n general_a neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o call_v in_o heretic_n of_o all_o sort_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o call_v the_o bysshope_n of_o the_o catholic_a communion_n then_o live_v when_o the_o council_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v the_o grecian_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o schism_n be_v not_o of_o your_o religion_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o their_o own_o mouth_n when_o you_o offer_v union_n and_o in_o your_o own_o judgement_n they_o hold_v heresy_n as_o that_o be_v of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o father_n only_o they_o return_v also_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n and_o florence_n where_o east_n and_o west_n agree_v in_o doctrine_n against_o your_o heresy_n and_o before_o their_o schism_n they_o have_v be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n a_o thousand_o year_n well_o near_o of_o indian_n and_o armenian_n you_o know_v by_o this_o what_o i_o will_v say_v and_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o run_v over_o the_o same_o again_o 57_o a_o four_o exception_n be_v that_o all_o nation_n be_v not_o at_o one_o time_n in_o the_o church_n because_o some_o be_v pagan_a some_o heretic_n and_o hence_o will_v you_o make_v a_o man_n have_v a_o scruple_n in_o recite_v that_o part_n of_o his_o creed_n wherein_o he_o do_v profess_v to_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n then_o existent_a when_o he_o say_v his_o creed_n notwithstanding_o this_o objection_n the_o creed_n be_v say_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n by_o such_o as_o be_v in_o their_o visible_a communion_n and_o must_v and_o will_v be_v say_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n endure_v and_o he_o that_o say_v it_o if_o he_o believe_v god_n word_n and_o promise_n may_v secure_o and_o must_v believe_v that_o still_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_a church_n which_o church_n have_v communion_n with_o all_o nation_n though_o this_o communion_n in_o all_o the_o latitude_n be_v not_o existent_a at_o that_o time_n but_o some_o be_v before_o some_o be_v to_o follow_v after_o as_o the_o church_n itself_o take_v whole_o be_v not_o existent_a all_o at_o one_o time_n but_o successivelie_o to_o the_o world_n end_n it_o be_v the_o collection_n of_o all_o catholic_n which_o ever_o be_v be_v and_o will_v be_v lucif_n orbis_n miratus_fw-la est_fw-la se_fw-la fact●_n esse_fw-la arianum_n dial._n con_v lucif_n 58._o a_o five_o be_v make_v out_o of_o a_o exaggeration_n of_o saint_n jeromes_n to_o the_o ground_n and_o occasion_n of_o the_o speech_n which_o be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d i_o may_v answer_v as_o s._n au._n do_v to_o the_o like_a ob_n make_v out_o of_o some_o word_n of_o s._n hilarius_n quis_fw-la nescit_fw-la ilio_fw-la tempore_fw-la obscuris_fw-la verbis_fw-la multos_fw-la parui_fw-la sensus_fw-la fuisse_fw-la delusos_fw-la ut_fw-la putarent_fw-la hoc_fw-la credi_fw-la ab_fw-la arianis_fw-la
they_o this_o be_v a_o succession_n because_o they_o be_v not_o all_o at_o one_o time_n and_o a_o catholic_a succession_n because_o the_o communion_n of_o nation_n be_v with_o they_o and_o with_o their_o faith_n and_o their_o decree_n 61._o other_o objection_n you_o have_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o this_o church_n do_v maintain_v but_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o be_v already_o answer_v in_o another_o place_n and_o hereafter_o i_o will_v prove_v at_o large_a that_o the_o catholic_a church_n only_o have_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o all_o teach_v spiritte_v and_o therefore_o can_v be_v condemn_v of_o error_n by_o any_o mean_v extant_a in_o the_o world_n whatsoever_o no_o judgement_n be_v of_o great_a or_o of_o equal_a authority_n with_o she_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o spiritte_v which_o do_v teach_v she_o all_o truth_n the_o second_o conclusion_n the_o christian_n in_o communion_n with_o vrbanus_n viii_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o three_o book_n of_o divine_a assistance_n the_o first_o chapter_n prove_v divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n 1._o have_v declare_v sufficient_o which_o be_v the_o church_n it_o follow_v next_o that_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o divine_a assistance_n in_o believe_v and_o teach_v which_o assistance_n the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v promise_v unto_o it_o catholic_n as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o do_v resolve_v their_o judgement_n into_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n do_v rely_v upon_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o providence_n it_o be_v preserve_v from_o err_v in_o the_o proposition_n of_o divine_a faith_n this_o assistance_n in_o church-proposition_n we_o believe_v and_o that_o you_o must_v also_o grant_v and_o believe_v it_o i_o be_o now_o to_o prove_v you_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o man_n be_v to_o be_v instruct_v true_o in_o faith_n a_o divine_a matter_n for_o how_o shall_v they_o live_v as_o christian_n ought_v unless_o they_o believe_v right_o and_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v right_o if_o they_o be_v not_o well_o teach_v and_o instruct_v how_o shall_v they_o invocate_v say_v the_o apostle_n in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v 10.14_o rom._n 10.14_o and_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v or_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n it_o can_v be_v for_o no_o man_n of_o himself_o be_v able_a to_o find_v out_o or_o to_o discover_v the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o scripture_n and_o their_o meaning_n it_o be_v therefore_o necessary_a that_o man_n be_v instruct_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 2._o and_o since_o instruction_n be_v necessary_a as_o we_o also_o by_o experience_n know_v this_o instruction_n must_v be_v look_v for_o in_o some_o school_n and_o from_o some_o master_n or_o instructor_n the_o question_n therefore_o come_v present_o about_o this_o teach_a school_n which_o and_o where_o it_o be_v that_o a_o man_n there_o may_v be_v instruct_v to_o this_o question_n the_o answer_n be_v easy_a first_o it_o be_v not_o the_o company_n of_o atheist_n or_o pagan_n for_o their_o doctrine_n and_o instruction_n be_v not_o holy_a and_o divine_a secondlie_o it_o be_v not_o the_o company_n of_o jew_n for_o their_o doctrine_n be_v not_o christian_a thirdlie_o it_o be_v not_o the_o company_n of_o confess_a heretic_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o church_n for_o the_o church_n be_v the_o school_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o which_o this_o be_v i_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o former_a book_n this_o suppose_a i_o reason_n thus_o for_o divine_a assistance_n 3._o it_o belong_v to_o the_o providence_n of_o allmightie_a god_n to_o assist_v that_o school_n in_o which_o by_o his_o will_n and_o ordinance_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o divine_a matter_n and_o religion_n therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o god_n providence_n to_o arg._n 1_o assist_v the_o church_n for_o the_o church_n be_v the_o say_a school_n as_o i_o declare_v before_o the_o argument_n be_v clear_a and_o needs_o no_o further_a confirmation_n but_o lest_o you_o seek_v to_o escape_v it_o if_o it_o be_v urge_v by_o one_o that_o be_v no_o scholar_n with_o some_o fond_a distinction_n i_o note_v here_o that_o the_o spirit_n do_v assist_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o teach_v the_o first_o of_o these_o act_n be_v in_o the_o understanding_n and_o interior_a the_o second_o be_v public_a or_o exterior_a and_o in_o the_o mouth_n the_o spirit_n do_v assist_v the_o church_n both_o way_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o teach_v but_o the_o argument_n do_v proceed_v here_o of_o assistance_n to_o the_o late_a to_o teach_v because_o faith_n according_a to_o s._n paul_n do_v suppose_v instruction_n or_o teach_n and_o every_o one_o shall_v have_v faith_n for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v condemn_v 16._o hebr._n 11._o mar._n 16._o moreover_o you_o know_v that_o for_o resolution_n in_o divine_a matter_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o man_n know_v where_o to_o seek_v instruction_n who_o he_o may_v secure_o follow_v in_o who_o judgement_n he_o may_v rest_v in_o who_o and_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v speak_v this_o be_v the_o thing_n we_o look_v for_o and_o this_o thing_n be_v in_o no_o other_o company_n but_o the_o school_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o church_n 4._o it_o may_v be_v you_o will_v say_v that_o a_o man_n desirous_a of_o instruction_n shall_v come_v to_o you_o but_o this_o will_v not_o satisfy_v for_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n have_v do_v before_o luther_n when_o protestant_n be_v not_o nor_o your_o religion_n think_v upon_o as_o i_o have_v see_v already_o in_o the_o first_o book_n he_o may_v have_v go_v over_o all_o the_o world_n to_o look_v for_o your_o church_n and_o lose_v his_o labour_n but_o deal_v plain_o with_o we_o and_o declare_v your_o mind_n be_v there_o any_o congregation_n in_o the_o world_n who_o instruction_n one_o may_v secure_o fellow_n or_o no_o if_o there_o be_v not_o what_o course_n shall_v unlearned_a man_n take_v to_o learn_v the_o truth_n shall_v they_o believe_v without_o preacher_n if_o there_o be_v which_o be_v it_o and_o whence_o have_v it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v follow_v of_o itself_o or_o from_o the_o spirit_n you_o can_v answer_v nothing_o but_o the_o spirit_n and_o this_o spirit_n not_o in_o atheist_n nor_o in_o jew_n nor_o in_o confess_v heretic_n but_o in_o the_o church_n and_o thus_o much_o for_o those_o who_o seek_v instruction_n 5._o i_o prove_v secondlie_o this_o assistance_n by_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o judge_n to_o determine_v controversy_n arg._n 2_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n since_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a in_o many_o place_n and_o since_o heresy_n do_v and_o must_v arise_v in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o there_o be_v some_o visible_a mean_n able_a and_o sufficient_a to_o determine_v controversy_n which_o mean_n can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o proposition_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o be_v visible_a and_o intelligent_a able_a to_o hear_v examine_v and_o define_v the_o controversy_n it_o must_v needs_o consist_v of_o man_n not_o of_o mere_a spirit_n or_o of_o insensible_a creature_n and_o if_o it_o consist_v of_o man_n these_o man_n must_v not_o be_v atheist_n or_o enemy_n to_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n such_o as_o be_v pagan_n jew_n and_o confess_v heretic_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v the_o church_n or_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o be_v to_o teach_v the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n therefore_o be_v the_o church_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v assist_v she_o in_o this_o act_n of_o determine_a controversy_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n direct_v her_o understanding_n to_o conceive_v the_o meaning_n of_o god_n word_n and_o preserve_v she_o from_o error_n in_o the_o proposition_n of_o it_o this_o discourse_n you_o can_v deny_v with_o any_o show_n of_o probability_n for_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o controversy_n among_o man_n if_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v neglect_v or_o be_v not_o certain_a and_o infallible_a if_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v in_o none_o at_o all_o if_o it_o do_v not_o teach_v the_o church_n it_o do_v teach_v none_o if_o it_o do_v not_o direct_v the_o church_n to_o understand_v god_n word_n it_o direct_v none_o if_o it_o do_v not_o assist_v the_o church_n when_o she_o for_o the_o general_a good_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n do_v determine_v a_o controversy_n of_o faith_n it_o do_v assist_v none_o at_o all_o for_o all_o the_o promise_n make_v by_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n of_o assistance_n be_v make_v unto_o
out_o of_o the_o arg._n 1_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o promise_v faithful_o to_o send_v the_o holy_a spiritte_v unto_o the_o church_n to_o assist_v it_o 13_o joh._n 14._o v._n 15.16_o 16._o ch._n five_o 13_o i_o will_v ask_v my_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o paraclete_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o forever_o the_o spiritte_v of_o truth_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n here_o the_o spiritte_v be_v promise_v to_o the_o church_n forever_o to_o assist_v she_o to_o all_o truth_n what_o can_v be_v say_v plain_a the_o like_a god_n before_o promise_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o call_v it_o his_o covenant_n 59.21_o isa_n 59.21_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o word_n which_o he_o put_v into_o her_o mouth_n shall_v never_o out_o of_o it_o and_o hereuppon_o the_o apostle_n believe_v that_o they_o have_v divine_a assistance_n and_o affirm_v their_o act_n and_o decree_n 15.28_o act_n 15.28_o to_o be_v the_o act_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o you_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n stay_v here_o and_o consider_v well_o what_o you_o will_v do_v in_o this_o case_n if_o you_o deny_v the_o assistance_n you_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o you_o grant_v it_o the_o cause_n be_v we_o 23._o that_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o answer_n you_o will_v say_v ever_o something_o and_o the_o more_o intricate_a it_o be_v the_o better_a it_o serve_v your_o turn_n forsooth_o you_o grant_v assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n lest_o you_o be_v see_v direct_o to_o contradict_v scripture_n but_o you_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n have_v it_o the_o church_n you_o say_v may_v mistake_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o be_v mistake_v many_o hundred_o year_n together_o but_o the_o spirit_n direct_v you_o to_o to_o it_o your_o apostle_n luther_n and_o you_o have_v hit_v it_o now_o at_o last_o silly_a man_n what_o be_v you_o what_o ground_n have_v you_o for_o divine_a assistance_n by_o what_o letter_n patent_n from_o god_n private_a council_n can_v you_o make_v this_o good_a our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n have_v promise_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spiritte_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o this_o promise_n be_v record_v in_o the_o scripture_n this_o hold_v not_o you_o say_v he_o have_v bethink_v himself_o better_o and_o recall_v it_o and_o make_v a_o late_a and_o a_o irrevocable_a firm_a promise_n unto_o you_o if_o you_o be_v not_o impostor_n let_v we_o see_v it_o if_o you_o show_v it_o not_o as_o you_o can_v for_o god_n be_v god_n and_o it_o not_o change_v you_o know_v what_o man_n be_v to_o think_v in_o such_o a_o case_n 24._o but_o why_o will_v you_o rob_v the_o church_n of_o god_n of_o her_o legacy_n she_o do_v inherit_v lawful_o this_o assistance_n it_o be_v bequeath_v she_o by_o jesus_n christ_n she_o have_v undeniable_a writing_n to_o show_v for_o it_o she_o have_v have_v possession_n of_o it_o long_o ago_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n she_o have_v enjoy_v it_o it_o be_v to_o late_o for_o you_o now_o to_o commence_v your_o suit_n go_v first_o and_o prove_v that_o you_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o the_o communion_n of_o nation_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o of_o the_o martyr_n and_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v be_v with_o you_o produce_v your_o succession_n of_o pastor_n continue_v ever_o from_o s._n peter_n bring_v to_o light_v your_o general_n counsel_n which_o yet_o never_o see_v the_o light_n name_v the_o nation_n you_o have_v convert_v unto_o the_o faith_n let_v we_o hear_v of_o your_o miracle_n let_v we_o see_v how_o the_o old_a prophecy_n all_o do_v meet_v and_o be_v verify_v in_o your_o church_n when_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v and_o so_o well_o do_v that_o the_o world_n see_v cleerlie_o your_o church_n and_o not_o we_o to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n then_o begin_v your_o suit_n and_o not_o now_o for_o your_o beggary_n and_o want_v of_o title_n and_o imposture_n be_v yet_o believe_v or_o rather_o see_v and_o feel_v of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n 25._o if_o we_o consider_v only_o those_o who_o yourselves_o do_v confess_v to_o have_v be_v heretic_n heretofore_o you_o must_v confess_v likewise_o that_o they_o be_v not_o heir_n unto_o the_o promise_n jesus_n christ_n make_v unto_o his_o church_n among_o which_o promise_v one_o be_v of_o perpetual_a assistance_n for_o this_o promise_n or_o legacy_n be_v make_v and_o bequeath_v by_o our_o saviour_n unto_o his_o church_n and_o confess_v heretic_n be_v not_o the_o church_n and_o flock_n of_o christ_n it_o rest_v therefore_o that_o you_o grant_v that_o church_n to_o inherit_v this_o legacy_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o not_o confess_o heretical_a and_o false_a whether_o this_o church_n be_v you_o or_o we_o this_o be_v evident_a now_o further_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o former_a book_n that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o you_o but_o we_o therefore_o the_o divine_a assistance_n be_v in_o we_o not_o in_o you_o and_o this_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o mark_v diligent_o l●●f●_n turn_v down_o the_o l●●f●_n to_o the_o end_n i_o need_v repeat_v it_o no_o more_o that_o be_v whensoever_o the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o spiritte_v look_v that_o you_o do_v not_o challenge_v it_o until_o you_o have_v prove_v that_o you_o be_v the_o church_n for_o there_o be_v in_o holy_a scripture_n no_o promise_n make_v of_o the_o spiritte_v but_o unto_o the_o church_n and_o the_o like_a i_o do_v say_v to_o your_o fellow_n either_o a_o part_n or_o all_o together_o either_o modern_a or_o more_o ancient_a if_o they_o will_v have_v i_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v the_o spiritte_v of_o jesus_n christ_n let_v they_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v the_o church_n neither_o do_v i_o care_v whether_o the_o controversy_n they_o pretend_v to_o determine_v by_o the_o spiritte_v be_v fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a for_o i_o harken_v to_o no_o spiritte_v but_o to_o that_o in_o the_o church_n therefore_o i_o say_v again_o if_o they_o will_v have_v i_o believe_v they_o let_v they_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v the_o church_n and_o bring_v such_o evidence_n as_o i_o have_v demand_v heretofore_o which_o will_v never_o be_v as_o long_o as_o the_o scripture_n and_o history_n be_v extant_a the_o second_o chapter_n wherein_o the_o last_o of_o the_o precedent_a argument_n be_v unfold_v more_o at_o large_a 26._o it_o grieve_v you_o much_o that_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n i_o say_v the_o divine_a assistance_n be_v bequeath_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o much_o you_o fret_v against_o i_o for_o it_o but_o can_v mend_v yourself_o for_o that_o which_o i_o say_v be_v there_o prove_v many_o way_n it_o be_v a_o tedious_a thing_n to_o preach_v to_o those_o who_o shut_v their_o ear_n when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v deliver_v who_o have_v eye_n but_o will_v not_o see_v i_o must_v speak_v loud_a yet_o and_o repeat_v the_o same_o over_o again_o and_o again_o that_o this_o sacred_a and_o transcendent_a truth_n of_o divine_a assistance_n may_v by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n grace_n enter_v into_o your_o soul_n which_o error_n possess_v have_v make_v deaf_a and_o dull_a to_o god_n word_n to_o run_v over_o all_o again_o will_v take_v more_o time_n than_o i_o can_v spare_v i_o will_v therefore_o inculcate_v the_o last_o argument_n only_o wherein_o be_v three_o text_n of_o scripture_n for_o assistance_n combine_v and_o connect_v all_o in_o one_o which_o i_o will_v here_o propose_v distinctlie_o in_o the_o first_o the_o divine_a assistance_n be_v promise_v by_o god_n the_o father_n and_o i_o will_v produce_v the_o covenant_n in_o the_o second_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n do_v bequeath_v it_o unto_o the_o church_n and_o i_o will_v bring_v the_o word_n of_o his_o will_n register_v by_o a_o apostle_n in_o the_o three_o the_o confess_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o receipt_n of_o this_o assistance_n which_o be_v to_o be_v for_o ever_o she_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o i_o argue_v thus_o 27._o if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o no_o doubt_n be_v the_o sacred_a truth_n for_o god_n speak_v no_o lie_n be_v always_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o god_n church_n by_o virtue_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o providence_n this_o church_n have_v in_o this_o divine_a assistance_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v always_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o god_n church_n by_o virtue_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o promise_n therefore_o the_o church_n have_v in_o this_o divine_a assistance_n the_o proposition_n be_v clear_a and_o include_v proof_n sufficient_a within_o itself_o because_o if_o god_n covenant_n and_o providence_n effect_v this_o thing_n we_o speak_v of_o god_n effect_n it_o and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o the_o assumption_n the_o prophet_n esay_n
one_o of_o god_n secretary_n a_o man_n beyond_o all_o exception_n declare_v in_o these_o word_n 59.21_o isa_n 59.21_o my_o spiritte_v that_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n that_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n etc._n etc._n say_v our_o lord_n from_o this_o present_a and_o for_o ever_o thus_o he_o and_o the_o title_n of_o it_o be_v this_o be_v my_o covenant_n with_o they_o precept_n he_o do_v not_o say_v my_o precept_n the_o church_n of_o the_o redeemer_n say_v our_o lord_n 28._o the_o first_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o place_n concern_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n but_o this_o be_v against_o the_o text_n itself_o which_o do_v speak_v very_o manifest_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o messiah_n as_o you_o may_v see_v by_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o go_v before_o they_o of_o the_o west_n shall_v fear_v the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n 19.20_o v._o 19.20_o and_o they_o of_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n his_o glory_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v as_o a_o violent_a stream_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n drive_v and_o the_o redeemer_n shall_v come_v to_o zion_n and_o to_o they_o that_o return_v from_o iniquity_n in_o jacob_n say_v our_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v when_o the_o messiah_n come_v into_o the_o world_n a_o redeemer_n to_o zion_n and_o to_o those_o that_o return_v from_o iniquity_n a_o israel_n for_o when_o all_o nation_n have_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n the_o jew_n will_v acknowledge_v our_o saviour_n too_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o former_a book_n ●_o rom._n 11._o ●_o and_o the_o apostle_n do_v also_o confirm_v out_o of_o this_o place_n both_o east_n and_o west_n that_o be_v the_o world_n will_v believe_v and_o this_o be_v my_o covenant_n with_o they_o the_o believer_n the_o church_n my_o spirit_n that_o be_v thou_o and_o my_o word_n etc._n etc._n the_o text_n above_o cite_v be_v by_o s._n jerome_n translate_v out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n which_o in_o his_o time_n have_v no_o point_n into_o latin_a thus_o time_n bunt_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la occidente_fw-la nomen_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la ab_fw-la ortu_fw-la solis_fw-la gloriam_fw-la eius_fw-la quum_fw-la venerit_fw-la quasi_fw-la flwius_fw-la violentus_fw-la quem_fw-la spiritus_fw-la domini_fw-la cogit_fw-la &_o venerit_fw-la zion_n redemptor_n &_o eye_v qui_fw-la redeunt_fw-la ab_fw-la iniquitate_fw-la in_o jacob_n dicit_fw-la dominus_fw-la hoc_fw-la foedus_fw-la meum_fw-la cum_fw-la eye_n dicit_fw-la dominus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la meus_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la in_o te_fw-la &_o verba_fw-la mea_fw-la quae_fw-la posui_fw-la in_o ore_fw-la tuo_fw-la non_fw-la recedent_fw-la de_fw-fr ore_fw-la etc._n etc._n 29._o the_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o promise_n be_v conditional_a and_o the_o sense_n this_o that_o god_n will_v keep_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n in_o their_o mouth_n if_o they_o follow_v the_o scripture_n and_o forsake_v not_o the_o truth_n in_o their_o heart_n this_o answer_n do_v change_v the_o sense_n of_o allmightie_a god_n for_o it_o add_v the_o condition_n of_o follow_v the_o scripture_n whereas_o the_o promise_n and_o covenant_n of_o allmightie_a god_n be_v absolute_a and_o without_o condition_n as_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o send_v a_o messiah_n and_o call_v the_o gentile_n and_o the_o promise_v our_o saviour_n make_v of_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n after_o his_o ascension_n it_o take_v also_o the_o true_a sense_n away_o for_o the_o covenant_n be_v of_o effect_v the_o church_n perseverance_n in_o teach_v and_o profess_v the_o sacred_a truth_n and_o adhere_v to_o his_o word_n and_o this_o you_o take_v away_o and_o the_o rest_n which_o you_o leave_v be_v not_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o bible_n nor_o any_o privilege_n at_o all_o but_o a_o thing_n which_o to_o atheist_n and_o devil_n you_o do_v grant_v for_o you_o confess_v they_o do_v teach_v true_a as_o long_o as_o they_o teach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 30._o i_o demand_v of_o you_o here_o whether_o you_o think_v in_o your_o conscience_n that_o god_n can_v continue_v the_o visible_a profession_n of_o the_o faith_n or_o no_o you_o can_v deny_v that_o he_o can_v do_v it_o if_o he_o will_v for_o his_o wisdom_n and_o power_n be_v infinite_a and_o nothing_o can_v be_v but_o so_o as_o he_o please_v to_o effect_v or_o to_o permit_v and_o if_o you_o deny_v this_o you_o deny_v that_o which_o in_o your_o creed_n you_o do_v profess_v now_o grant_v that_o he_o can_v do_v it_o why_o do_v not_o you_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v and_o do_v see_v that_o he_o have_v oblige_v himself_o thereunto_o by_o promise_n and_o covenant_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v testify_v it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a case_n when_o a_o man_n dare_v not_o stand_v to_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o their_o immediate_a sense_n which_o they_o do_v offer_v especial_o a_o sense_n which_o be_v honourable_a to_o god_n and_o beneficial_a to_o the_o church_n but_o will_v add_v condition_n of_o his_o own_o as_o if_o god_n can_v make_v no_o covenant_n unless_o he_o be_v his_o lawyer_n to_o give_v he_o counsel_n but_o omit_v your_o trick_n as_o foolish_a and_o ungrounded_a and_o contrary_a to_o god_n honour_n and_o veracitie_n and_o wisdom_n i_o will_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o one_o thing_n which_o our_o saviour_n say_v touch_v the_o prophecy_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n 44.45.46.47_o luke_n 24._o five_o 44.45.46.47_o all_o thing_n say_v he_o must_v needs_o be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o psalm_n of_o i_o then_o he_o open_v their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o that_o so_o it_o be_v write_v and_o so_o it_o behove_v christ_n to_o suffer_v and_o to_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a the_o three_o day_n and_o penance_n to_o be_v preach_v and_o remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o all_o nation_n begin_n from_o jerusalem_n hear_v you_o have_v hear_v this_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o nation_n particular_o by_o christ_n insert_v among_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o say_v must_v needs_o be_v fulfil_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o covenant_n which_o i_o have_v cite_v be_v in_o the_o prophet_n and_o touch_v this_o preach_v particular_o why_o do_v you_o then_o oppose_v yourself_o to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o say_v it_o need_v not_o be_v fulfil_v it_o must_v not_o needs_o be_v 31._o the_o three_o answer_n be_v that_o god_n according_a to_o the_o covenant_n do_v keep_v the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o save_v faith_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o predestinate_a though_o they_o do_v not_o always_o profess_v it_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n we_o speak_v of_o profession_n of_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n this_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o continue_v and_o this_o make_v man_n see_v and_o hear_v of_o other_o this_o make_v a_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n that_o all_o nation_n may_v hear_v and_o come_v unto_o the_o church_n where_o continual_o one_o generation_n follow_v a_o other_o with_o the_o gospel_n the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o their_o mouth_n 59.21_o isay_n 59.21_o hark_v puritan_n the_o scripture_n thunder_v this_o in_o my_o covenant_n with_o they_o say_v our_o lord_n my_o spiritte_v that_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n that_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o thy_o seed_n say_v our_o lord_n from_o this_o present_a and_o forever_o reflect_v upon_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o covenant_n with_o they_o the_o christian_a church_n say_v our_o lord_n my_o spiritte_v which_o be_v in_o thou_o in_o thy_o hart_n and_o my_o word_n he_o say_v not_o this_o or_o that_o point_n but_o general_o my_o word_n which_o i_o god_n have_v put_v into_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o out_o whence_o of_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n etc._n etc._n till_o when_o for_o ever_o i_o be_v about_o to_o make_v a_o end_n here_o of_o this_o part_n but_o i_o can_v for_o bear_v add_v one_o sentence_n more_o out_o of_o the_o same_o prophet_n in_o a_o other_o chapter_n next_o but_o one_o where_o he_o declare_v the_o perpetual_a visibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o continual_a noise_n which_o her_o pastor_n make_v and_o show_v in_o part_n the_o use_n of_o the_o foresay_a assistance_n upon_o thy_o wall_n jerusalem_n
i_o have_v appoint_v watchman_n 62.6_o isay_n 62.6_o all_o the_o day_n and_o all_o the_o night_n forever_o they_o shall_v not_o hold_v their_o peace_n it_o be_v not_o say_v they_o shall_v not_o hold_v their_o peace_n if_o they_o do_v not_o sleep_v according_a to_o your_o drowsy_a gloss_n or_o if_o they_o will_v not_o speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o absolute_o it_o be_v say_v they_o shall_v not_o hold_v their_o peace_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o 16.17_o john_n 14._o v._o 16.17_o 32._o the_o second_o place_n do_v contain_v our_o saviour_n will_n as_o i_o say_v the_o word_n be_v these_o i_o will_v ask_v the_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o paraclete_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v because_o it_o see_v he_o not_o neither_o know_v he_o but_o you_o know_v he_o because_o he_o shall_v abide_v with_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o 26._o v._o 26._o the_o paraclete_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o the_o father_n will_v send_v in_o my_o name_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o suggest_v unto_o you_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o 12.13_o ●6_n chap._n v._o 12.13_o yet_o many_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o say_v unto_o you_o but_o you_o can_v bear_v they_o now_o but_o when_o he_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n come_v he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n for_o he_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o what_o thing_n soever_o he_o shall_v hear_v he_o shall_v speak_v in_o these_o word_n observe_v with_o i_o seven_o thing_n the_o first_o be_v who_o send_v jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n secondlie_o who_o he_o send_v another_o comforter_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spiritte_v of_o truth_n thirdlie_o to_o who_o he_o send_v this_o comforter_n and_o spirit_n to_o the_o church_n he_o be_v to_o leave_v behind_o he_o here_o one_o earth_n consist_v of_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n person_n visible_a by_o their_o function_n and_o office_n fourthlie_o how_o this_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v with_o they_o to_o abide_v in_o this_o church_n and_o to_o remanie_fw-fr with_o it_o fiftlie_o to_o what_o end_n all_o this_o to_o teach_v they_o the_o truth_n sixth_o teach_v some_o pro_fw-la be_v so_o wise_a as_o to_o exclude_v teach_v and_o say_v the_o spirit_n be_v leave_v only_o to_o comfort_v not_o to_o teach_v what_o truth_n and_o how_o much_o whatsoever_o i_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o what_o thing_n soever_o he_o shall_v hear_v all_o truth_n seaventhlie_a for_o how_o long_o for_o ever_o all_o this_o be_v in_o the_o text_n and_o therefore_o our_o position_n be_v most_o true_a that_o the_o church_n have_v divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o faith_n 33_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o moreover_o first_o that_o god_n with_o a_o few_o word_n can_v signify_v many_o thing_n his_o comprehension_n be_v infinite_a and_o he_o know_v all_o the_o signification_n and_o use_n of_o all_o word_n and_o next_o that_o i_o take_v these_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o whole_a fullnes_n of_o their_o sense_n and_o meaning_n though_o some_o interpreter_n have_v content_v themselves_o to_o put_v a_o part_n of_o it_o only_o down_o have_v not_o then_o occasion_n as_o we_o have_v now_o to_o search_v further_o in_o the_o church_n be_v people_n and_o pastor_n the_o spiritte_v assist_v all_o some_o to_o teach_v and_o to_o govern_v other_o to_o obey_v and_o to_o be_v direct_v some_o be_v predestinate_a and_o with_o these_o the_o spiritte_v continue_v to_o perseverance_n some_o be_v not_o but_o for_o a_o time_n believe_v and_o this_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spiritte_v and_o some_o of_o they_o be_v teacher_n also_o and_o governor_n and_o in_o this_o kind_n do_v participate_v also_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n who_o dispose_v all_o as_o he_o please_v divide_v his_o gift_n and_o grace_n among_o man_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o predestinate_a in_o fine_a all_o those_o who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n persevere_v final_o so_o that_o the_o spirit_n lead_v they_o further_o to_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n and_o there_o show_v they_o all_o truth_n in_o itself_o abide_v so_o with_o they_o for_o all_o eternity_n 34._o but_o now_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o you_o say_v to_o this_o place_n first_o you_o say_v it_o be_v promise_v to_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o own_o person_n only_o this_o be_v false_a first_o because_o it_o be_v promise_v to_o remain_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o own_o person_n be_v not_o to_o live_v ever_o here_o and_o perpetual_a coexistence_n of_o two_o extreme_n include_v a_o perpetual_a existence_n of_o each_o of_o they_o as_o i_o note_v before_o upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n it_o be_v to_o they_o therefore_o and_o to_o their_o successor_n after_o they_o without_o end_v at_o any_o time_n and_o so_o forever_o secondlie_o by_o the_o end_n of_o the_o grant_v the_o same_o be_v evident_a for_o the_o church_n now_o a_o day_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o this_o assistance_n as_o well_o as_o it_o do_v then_o and_o in_o some_o respect_v more_o because_o it_o be_v great_a and_o the_o like_v it_o be_v of_o other_o age_n and_o will_v be_v still_o to_o the_o world_n end_n since_o therefore_o the_o providence_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o the_o establishment_n of_o his_o church_n and_o salvation_n of_o his_o elect_a be_v perfect_a the_o grant_n hold_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n and_o be_v so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o the_o word_n stand_v forever_o 35._o next_o you_o say_v the_o sense_n be_v the_o spiritte_v teach_v the_o church_n all_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v teach_v she_o if_o i_o shall_v tell_v you_o that_o my_o master_n in_o england_n do_v teach_v i_o all_o language_n and_o confess_v afterward_o they_o be_v but_o two_o that_o he_o teach_v i_o you_o will_v think_v sure_a that_o i_o do_v lie_v for_o two_o be_v not_o all_o yet_o will_v you_o have_v the_o scripture_n to_o speak_v in_o this_o manner_n but_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v plain_a he_o shall_v teach_v all_o whatsoever_o i_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v hear_v all_o truth_n 13_o ch_n 14._o v._n 26_o ch._n 16._o v._n 13_o and_o i_o think_v if_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o all_o my_o book_n you_o will_v not_o be_v content_v if_o my_o executor_n shall_v give_v you_o the_o ten_o part_n with_o this_o interpretation_n of_o the_o will_n i_o give_v you_o all_o that_o be_v all_o which_o be_v give_v you_o and_o then_o define_v what_o that_o be_v among_o themselves_o as_o you_o do_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o fundamental_a point_n but_o of_o this_o hereafter_o 36._o the_o three_o way_n of_o elude_v the_o place_n be_v to_o say_v that_o in_o heaven_n the_o spirit_n teach_v all_o truth_n but_o not_o here_o that_o in_o heaven_n he_o teach_v all_o i_o know_v well_o but_o you_o err_v against_o the_o scripture_n in_o deny_v that_o he_o teach_v all_o truth_n here_o read_v the_o text_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o our_o saviour_n send_v the_o spirit_n unto_o the_o militant_a church_n from_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o withdraw_v his_o visible_a presence_n to_o the_o apostle_n leave_v in_o the_o world_n and_o to_o their_o successor_n to_o comfort_v they_o in_o his_o absence_n to_o reduce_v unto_o their_o mind_n what_o he_o have_v say_v and_o to_o assist_v and_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n the_o spiritte_v of_o truth_n say_v excellentlie_o s._n cyrill_n will_v lead_v unto_o all_o truth_n 41._o cyrill_n alex_n li._n 10._o in_o joan._n cap._n 41._o for_o he_o know_v exact_o the_o truth_n who_o spirit_n he_o be_v and_o have_v reveal_v it_o unto_o we_o not_o in_o part_n only_o but_o entire_o for_o though_o in_o this_o life_n we_o know_v in_o part_n only_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v 13._o 1._o cor._n 13._o not_o a_o imperfect_a but_o the_o entire_a truth_n have_v shine_v unto_o we_o in_o this_o little_a knowledge_n believe_v knowledge_n the_o object_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n as_o the_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n etc._n etc._n may_v be_v know_v either_o obscure_o by_o faith_n or_o clear_o by_o vision_n the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v a_o unperfect_a knowledge_n of_o they_o the_o latter_a be_v perfect_a as_o he_o that_o believe_v all_o the_o conclusion_n in_o euclid_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o scholar_n who_o general_o agree_v in_o they_o know_v they_o unperfect_o but_o he_o that_o can_v demonstrate_v they_o know_v they_o perfect_o to_o both_o the_o foresay_a knowledge_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v lead_v the_o church_n to_o the_o former_a here_o on_o earth_n to_o the_o late_a in_o heaven_n of_o the_o
one_o s._n cyrill_n here_o do_v speak_v of_o the_o other_o s._n august_n tract_n 96._o in_o joan._n to_o help_v the_o rude_a to_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o difference_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n suppose_v a_o man_n be_v bear_v and_o breed_v in_o a_o cave_n under_o ground_n and_o there_o teach_v that_o above_o there_o be_v heaven_n sun_n and_o star_n and_o afterward_o bring_v out_o in_o a_o clear_a night_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o firmament_n with_o the_o heaven_n immensity_n in_o the_o day_n to_o see_v the_o sun_n illustrate_v all_o the_o world_n with_o his_o light_n this_o late_a knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v clear_a and_o perfect_a if_o you_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o former_a which_o he_o before_o at_o his_o be_v under_o ground_n where_o he_o see_v no_o great_a light_n than_o a_o poor_a candle_n have_v of_o they_o so_o be_v the_o church_n knowledge_n here_o here_o below_o she_o be_v entru_v that_o in_o god_n there_o be_v three_o person_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o make_v a_o unperfect_a obscure_a conceit_n of_o it_o but_o when_o she_o get_v up_o thither_o she_o shall_v behold_v god_n clear_o as_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o and_o so_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o now_o she_o do_v believe_v 37._o the_o four_o way_n be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o place_n be_v to_o be_v limit_v to_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o common_a people_n but_o this_o hold_v not_o for_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o the_o learned_a who_o shall_v compound_v difference_n in_o religion_n condemn_v heresy_n and_o repair_v the_o fault_n of_o schism_n which_o tear_v the_o church_n in_o piece_n if_o the_o spirit_n assistance_n do_v it_o not_o in_o vain_a do_v you_o limit_v the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o be_v a_o man_n you_o be_v not_o god_n you_o can_v rule_v he_o and_o pare_v of_o what_o you_o please_v from_o his_o promise_n his_o word_n import_v all_o not_o only_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a for_o common_a people_n but_o all_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v reveal_v they_o be_v extend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v require_v again_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o determine_v how_o far_o this_o assistance_n be_v afford_v to_o this_o or_o that_o christian_a in_o particular_a which_o live_v in_o a_o catholic_a country_n and_o in_o peace_n another_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o define_v how_o far_o it_o be_v afford_v unto_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n 38._o the_o last_o way_n be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o promise_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v only_o in_o the_o invisible_a church_n by_o teach_v they_o private_o this_o be_v false_a for_o the_o church_n whereunto_o this_o promise_n be_v make_v be_v the_o visible_a church_n and_o god_n make_v it_o to_o no_o other_o the_o apostle_n be_v visible_a and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o when_o their_o noise_n go_v over_o all_o the_o world_n the_o company_n of_o christian_n in_o communion_n with_o they_o be_v visible_a their_o successor_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a their_o office_n of_o preach_v of_o minister_a the_o sacrament_n and_o govern_v god_n people_n do_v manifest_v their_o person_n to_o the_o flock_n the_o guifte_n of_o tongue_n of_o interpretation_n of_o work_a miracle_n and_o the_o like_a make_v the_o man_n and_o so_o the_o church_n visible_a the_o predestinate_a need_v visible_a instruction_n 10.14_o rom._n 10.14_o for_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v unless_o they_o hear_v say_v the_o apostle_n in_o this_o case_n and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n and_o a_o preacher_n you_o know_v be_v visible_a you_o see_v he_o you_o hear_v he_o you_o can_v point_v at_o he_o now_o preacher_n deliver_v not_o infallible_o such_o doctrine_n as_o the_o predestinate_a be_v to_o believe_v without_o assistance_n and_o therefore_o for_o the_o predestinate_a people_n sake_n it_o be_v all_o together_o necessary_a to_o assist_v the_o church_n in_o visible_a act_n in_o preach_v in_o deliver_v true_a doctrine_n which_o be_v to_o assist_v the_o visible_a church_n in_o fine_a the_o office_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n who_o act_n be_v in_o teach_v and_o direct_v other_o and_o consequent_o visible_a act_n can_v not_o be_v right_o perform_v without_o assistance_n which_o you_o confess_v and_o our_o saviour_n intend_v the_o perfomance_n of_o those_o act_n that_o so_o his_o church_n be_v call_v by_o his_o word_n deliver_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o man_n may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n do_v leave_v they_o that_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o this_o end_n divine_a assistance_n and_o say_v the_o paraclete_n who_o the_o father_n will_v send_v in_o my_o name_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n 13._o john_n 14._o five_o 〈◊〉_d 16_o 〈◊〉_d 13._o and_o suggest_v unto_o you_o all_o he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n 39_o the_o three_o place_n i_o be_o to_o inculcate_v for_o this_o assistance_n contain_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o undeniable_a christian_a church_n acknowledge_v the_o receipt_n of_o it_o for_o if_o we_o produce_v evidence_n for_o the_o promise_n and_o this_o by_o covenant_n and_o for_o the_o actual_a send_n and_o final_o for_o the_o receipt_n of_o this_o assistance_n by_o such_o as_o confessedlie_o may_v do_v it_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o cause_n be_v win_v to_o proceed_v therefore_o to_o this_o part_n you_o will_v confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o if_o they_o receive_v this_o assistance_n the_o church_n receive_v it_o and_o as_o they_o understand_v the_o promise_n and_o believe_v it_o so_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v and_o to_o believe_v it_o now_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o they_o receive_v this_o assistance_n and_o do_v not_o only_o believe_v that_o according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n they_o have_v it_o infallible_o when_o they_o be_v to_o determine_v matter_n of_o religion_n but_o they_o do_v further_o declare_v unto_o christian_n this_o assistance_n and_o direction_n which_o they_o have_v enjoy_v and_o do_v puhlishe_v it_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o church_n for_o the_o decree_n which_o after_o much_o dispute_n and_o inquisition_n they_o make_v in_o their_o general_a meeting_n at_o jerusalem_n they_o begin_v thus_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o us._n ●_o act_n 15._o v._o ●_o affirm_v by_o these_o word_n plain_o and_o propose_v also_o to_o christian_n to_o believe_v their_o public_a act_n and_o decree_n to_o be_v the_o act_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o if_o it_o be_v his_o also_o than_o he_o with_o they_o make_v it_o assisting_z and_o direct_v they_o in_o the_o do_n as_o our_o saviour_n have_v promise_v he_o shall_v do_v and_o herein_o the_o apostle_n give_v example_n to_o their_o successor_n to_o understand_v our_o saviour_n promise_n so_o and_o to_o believe_v and_o do_v so_o as_o they_o have_v understand_v it_o and_o believe_v and_o do_v the_o place_n be_v clear_a the_o thing_n be_v undeniable_a 40._o as_o these_o master_n of_o christianity_n have_v understand_v believe_v do_v assure_v themselves_o and_o other_o of_o divine_a assistance_n in_o their_o common_a definition_n and_o decree_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o saviour_n promise_n without_o any_o more_o ado_n he_o be_v god_n and_o therefore_o mean_v as_o he_o say_v and_o as_o good_a as_o his_o promise_n so_o do_v their_o successor_n understand_v believe_v and_o do_v in_o regard_v the_o promise_n be_v make_v forever_o and_o therefore_o they_o also_o believe_v and_o assure_v other_o of_o divine_a assistance_n in_o their_o common_a definition_n and_o decree_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o promise_n this_o the_o pastor_n assemble_v in_o general_a counsel_n have_v do_v ever_o since_o and_o the_o christian_a people_n in_o communion_n with_o these_o counsel_n have_v believe_v it_o those_o christian_n which_o live_v in_o the_o first_o age_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v by_o virtue_n of_o our_o saviour_n promise_n divine_a assistance_n to_o propose_v and_o spread_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o teach_v right_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v believe_v in_o all_o which_o by_o general_a consent_n they_o do_v propose_v or_o wherein_o they_o do_v all_o agree_v so_o that_o the_o predestinate_a and_o all_o other_o may_v secure_o believe_v as_o they_o teach_v and_o go_v on_o towards_o heaven_n that_o way_n which_o they_o point_v out_o the_o church_n in_o the_o second_o age_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o age_n have_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o thereupon_o believe_v also_o that_o
they_o may_v secure_o believe_v what_o the_o first_o age_n by_o general_a consent_n have_v teach_v the_o church_n in_o the_o three_o age_n do_v believe_v the_o same_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o age_n and_o thus_o ever_o succeed_v world_n of_o people_n do_v believe_v of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n before_o their_o tyme._n thus_o it_o have_v be_v believe_v thus_o have_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o divine_a legacy_n receive_v at_o first_o by_o undeniable_a heir_n the_o apostle_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o church_n these_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n 46._o in_o this_o church_n have_v be_v infinite_a people_n pastor_n innumerable_a great_a divine_v grave_a father_n the_o reverence_n of_o antiquity_n and_o flower_n of_o learning_n in_o it_o have_v be_v all_o the_o true_a martyr_n that_o ever_o suffer_v for_o jesus_n christ_n all_o the_o contemplative_n all_o the_o saint_n and_o predestinate_a all_o the_o apostle_n all_o holy_a people_n that_o have_v be_v since_o the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v down_o into_o the_o world_n to_o redeem_v and_o instruct_v man_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o these_o condemn_v you_o and_o your_o spirit_n as_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o god_n church_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o ancient_a father_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n elect_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n who_o believe_v all_o that_o the_o church_n whereof_o they_o be_v have_v the_o assistance_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n 42._o will_v you_o see_v your_o adversary_n all_o at_o once_o man_n stay_v not_o long_o in_o this_o world_n some_o die_n more_o be_v bear_v so_o that_o mankind_n like_o a_o flood_n run_v on_o and_o every_o one_o be_v a_o part_n a_o drop_n in_o this_o flood_n the_o understanding_n only_o can_v stay_v in_o itself_o and_o make_v all_o at_o once_o stand_v before_o it_o assemble_v therefore_o in_o your_o understanding_n the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o former_a age_n and_o look_v then_o on_o the_o company_n and_o see_v they_o all_o against_o yourself_o behold_v a_o council_n for_o we_o have_v abstract_v these_o man_n the_o church_n i_o mean_v from_o time_n and_o place_n diffuse_v it_o in_o which_o consideration_n the_o union_n of_o the_o part_n in_o belief_n and_o their_o communion_n do_v remain_v therefore_o i_o say_v again_o behold_v a_o council_n ecumenical_a the_o most_o ample_a the_o most_o learned_a the_o most_o reverend_a that_o ever_o be_v wherein_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n africa_n and_o europe_n before_o luther_n i_o except_o only_o confess_v heretic_n all_o the_o ancient_a father_n all_o the_o great_a divines_n all_o the_o pastor_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o space_n of_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n confess_v heretic_n except_v all_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n all_o the_o saint_n and_o predestinate_a all_o the_o apostle_n all_o the_o evangelist_n and_o people_n infinite_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o great_a council_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n move_v all_o as_o he_o please_v and_o by_o his_o operation_n keep_v the_o truth_n manifest_a and_o the_o precedent_n of_o it_o be_v jesus_n christ_n the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n god_n and_o man_n all_o these_o condemn_v your_o doctrine_n your_o spirit_n be_v against_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o these_o and_o therefore_o by_o christian_a people_n to_o be_v condemn_v and_o abhor_v 43._o i_o be_o no_o rhetoritian_n i_o do_v not_o amplify_v i_o have_v prove_v all_o that_o i_o do_v say_v and_o here_o end_v this_o chapter_n wish_v you_o to_o consider_v well_o what_o i_o have_v say_v hitherto_o for_o divine_a assistance_n and_o if_o you_o understand_v it_o well_o as_o god_n grant_v you_o may_v you_o will_v see_v that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v without_o contempt_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n without_o contradict_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o predestinate_a without_o opposition_n to_o know_a saint_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o divine_a religion_n without_o give_v the_o lie_n to_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n and_o final_o without_o open_a injury_n to_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o have_v each_o their_o peculiar_a interest_n in_o the_o matter_n the_o son_n in_o entreat_v the_o father_n in_o send_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o come_v whereby_o this_o transcendent_a principle_n of_o divine_a assistance_n do_v rely_v peculiarlie_o upon_o the_o whole_a trinity_n which_o be_v the_o prime_a verity_n and_o origin_n of_o create_a understanding_n the_o three_o chapter_n that_o the_o argument_n be_v not_o answer_v by_o the_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a 44._o that_o you_o may_v have_v some_o thing_n to_o say_v and_o conceal_v your_o unsufficiencie_n from_o such_o as_o be_v not_o scholar_n you_o put_v in_o here_o a_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a point_n and_o think_v to_o stop_v our_o mouth_n with_o one_o piece_n of_o the_o distinction_n some_o of_o your_o fellow_n express_v themselves_o in_o other_o term_n but_o in_o sense_n you_o meet_v your_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o church_n have_v infallible_a assistance_n to_o fundamental_a point_n not_o to_o other_o concern_v the_o fundamental_a point_n you_o be_v not_o yet_o agree_v most_o common_o you_o think_v that_o they_o be_v the_o chief_a point_n in_o the_o three_o creed_n and_o agree_v all_o that_o they_o be_v very_o few_o some_o will_v have_v four_o other_o six_z other_o eight_z suppose_v with_o the_o most_o that_o they_o be_v twelve_o according_a to_o your_o distinction_n the_o spirit_n do_v assist_v the_o church_n infallible_o to_o these_o point_n and_o have_v do_v so_o ever_o it_o remain_v now_o that_o i_o add_v a_o word_n or_o two_o touch_v the_o rest_n 45._o i_o be_o therefore_o to_o prove_v a_o further_a assistance_n of_o the_o spiritte_v then_o to_o six_o or_o twelve_o point_n which_o you_o call_v fundamental_a and_o first_o my_o argument_n which_o i_o make_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n be_v not_o answer_v by_o your_o distinction_n but_o prove_v strong_o that_o god_n assistance_n be_v to_o all_o and_o your_o answer_n which_o make_v a_o wide_a exception_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n have_v none_o at_o all_o be_v first_o without_o ground_n in_o the_o scripture_n you_o shall_v have_v show_v your_o distinction_n there_o if_o you_o have_v expect_v belief_n for_o man_n may_v not_o presume_v to_o make_v exception_n at_o their_o pleasure_n in_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o god_n secondlie_o it_o leave_v the_o world_n without_o satisfaction_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o controversy_n for_o you_o leave_v no_o mean_n at_o all_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o for_o example_n to_o end_v the_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o you_o you_o leave_v no_o mean_n at_o all_o not_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n spiritte_v for_o you_o say_v they_o be_v in_o matter_n not_o fundamental_a and_o that_o our_o church_n in_o fundamental_n never_o err_v nor_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n for_o all_o man_n if_o not_o assist_v may_v err_v in_o divine_a matter_n nor_o the_o testimony_n and_o judgement_n of_o antiquity_n for_o if_o they_o be_v certain_a of_o these_o matter_n it_o be_v either_o by_o their_o own_o wit_n and_o these_o without_o god_n assistance_n may_v err_v or_o it_o be_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spiritte_v to_o these_o point_n which_o be_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o distinction_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o other_o way_n find_v either_o in_o the_o disposition_n of_o god_n providence_n for_o this_o be_v the_o thing_n will_v overthrow_v your_o distinction_n or_o in_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n 46._o thirdlie_o this_o doctrine_n of_o you_o be_v against_o the_o perfection_n of_o our_o saviour_n providence_n for_o all_o powerful_a and_o wise_a person_n establish_v a_o perpetual_a common_a wealth_n take_v order_n for_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o it_o since_o division_n be_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o public_a weal_n and_o our_o saviour_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v before_o have_v institute_v a_o spiritual_a common_a wealth_n to_o last_v forever_o wherefore_o if_o he_o have_v not_o ordain_v mean_n for_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o it_o his_o providence_n have_v be_v deficient_a and_o this_o common_a wealth_n of_o he_o with_o infinite_a division_n arise_v about_o the_o most_o obscure_a rule_n or_o law_n which_o he_o have_v leave_v will_v be_v tear_v into_o piece_n and_o so_o perish_v and_o not_o be_v perpetual_a as_o he_o intend_v it_o shall_v be_v again_o division_n and_o schism_n be_v not_o only_o in_o point_n by_o you_o esteem_v fundamental_a as_o appear_v cleerelie_o by_o your_o schism_n and_o god_n rule_n or_o write_v word_n contain_v not_o only_a thing_n fundamental_a in_o that_o sense_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o scripture_n wherein_o be_v other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o
this_o body_n one_o whereof_o visible_a man_n be_v member_n and_o predestinate_a also_o member_n of_o the_o same_o then_o be_v there_o not_o two_o church_n of_o christ_n one_o visible_a the_o other_o invisible_a now_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o this_o mystical_a body_n be_v but_o one_o wherein_o be_v visible_a and_o predestinate_v person_n therefore_o there_o be_v not_o two_o church_n of_o christ_n one_o visible_a the_o other_o invisible_a two_o body_n one_o visible_a the_o other_o invisible_a but_o all_o appertain_v to_o one_o body_n and_o one_o church_n i_o confirm_v this_o out_o of_o s._n paul_n who_o in_o his_o epistle_n the_o ephesian_n say_v that_o god_n the_o father_n have_v make_v christ_n the_o head_n over_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n 13._o ephes_n 1._o five_o 22.23_o ch._n 4._o v._n 13._o in_o this_o church_n the_o apostle_n say_v christ_n put_v apostle_n pastor_n &c._n &c._n till_o we_o all_o meet_v into_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 13._o chap._n 2.19_o ch._n 1._o v._n 13._o and_o in_o the_o same_o church_n be_v the_o citizen_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o domesticall_n of_o god_n those_o which_o be_v sign_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o pledge_n of_o our_o inheritance_n in_o fine_a the_o predestinate_a and_o s._n paul_n himself_o be_v in_o this_o church_n this_o one_o body_n therefore_o have_v these_o two_o attribut_n to_o wit_n it_o be_v visible_a for_o have_v in_o it_o intrinsecallie_o and_o for_o ever_o public_a person_n pastor_n doctor_n it_o may_v thereby_o be_v see_v and_o hear_v and_o it_o have_v in_o it_o the_o predestinate_a which_o you_o call_v invisible_a man_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o visible_a and_o invisible_a in_o that_o sense_n leave_v it_o still_o as_o it_o be_v one_o body_n 105._o fiftlie_o our_o great_a pastor_n foul_v be_v one_o not_o two_o as_o your_o distinction_n make_v it_o he_o have_v one_o foul_v and_o that_o be_v visible_a for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v visible_a as_o i_o have_v manifest_o declare_v before_o and_o to_o this_o foul_v his_o predestinate_a be_v all_o bring_v out_o of_o what_o nation_n out_o of_o what_o part_n of_o the_o world_n soever_o other_o sheep_n i_o have_v that_o be_v not_o of_o this_o fold_n a_o foul_a wherein_o the_o apostle_n be_v 10.16_o john_n 10.16_o man_n visible_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o wherein_o their_o successor_n be_v man_n also_o visible_a they_o also_o i_o must_v bring_v and_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v one_o foul_v and_o one_o pastor_n here_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o fold_n the_o church_n be_v one_o away_o then_o with_o your_o distinction_n believe_v one_o as_o we_o do_v which_o be_v visible_a in_o which_o the_o predestinate_a people_n be_v 106._o and_o indeed_o where_o shall_v one_o look_v for_o our_o saviour_n scholar_n but_o in_o his_o school_n where_o shall_v we_o look_v for_o god_n domesticall_n but_o in_o his_o house_n where_o shall_v we_o look_v for_o his_o member_n but_o in_o his_o body_n where_o shall_v we_o look_v for_o holy_a people_n for_o predestinate_a for_o saint_n but_o in_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o have_v demonstrate_v before_o which_o be_v the_o church_n this_o labour_n may_v have_v be_v spare_v for_o as_o i_o answer_v of_o the_o spirit_n that_o you_o shall_v not_o challenge_v he_o till_o you_o have_v prove_v that_o you_o be_v the_o church_n a_o task_n unpossible_a so_o now_o i_o may_v answer_v of_o holy_a people_n of_o predestinate_a of_o saint_n that_o you_o do_v not_o callenge_v any_o till_o you_o have_v prove_v which_o you_o will_v not_o do_v as_o long_o as_o god_n be_v god_n that_o you_o be_v the_o church_n 107._o it_o be_v very_o a_o ridiculous_a thing_n to_o see_v what_o church_n you_o frame_v in_o your_o imagination_n one_o full_a of_o word_n ever_o preach_v all_o mouth_n but_o without_o spirit_n without_o hart_n without_o soul_n the_o other_o full_a of_o the_o protestant_a spirit_n but_o silent_a and_o ashamed_a of_o her_o own_o doctrine_n in_o so_o much_o that_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o she_o be_v dumb_a a_o church_n without_o a_o mouth_n the_o mouth_n and_o hart_n you_o know_v be_v both_o part_n of_o one_o man_n the_o hart_n be_v within_o and_o be_v not_o see_v but_o by_o the_o mouth_n in_o the_o mouth_n it_o do_v show_v itself_o in_o what_o form_n it_o please_v to_o affect_v the_o church_n too_o have_v hart_n and_o mouth_n hart_n to_o believe_v to_o love_n god_n and_o mouth_n to_o praise_v invoke_v and_o profess_v he_o these_o make_v not_o two_o church_n they_o be_v two_o part_n of_o one_o god_n have_v promise_v these_o two_o to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n his_o spirit_n be_v always_o in_o her_o hart_n and_o his_o word_n always_o in_o her_o mouth_n i_o will_v ask_v my_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o a_o other_o paraclete_n 16.17_o io_n 14_o v._o 15_o 16.17_o that_o he_o may_v abide_v which_o you_o for_o ever_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v because_o it_o see_v he_o not_o nor_o know_v he_o but_o you_o know_v he_o because_o he_o shall_v abide_v with_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o thus_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o apostle_n public_a and_o visible_a person_n and_o in_o they_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n 9.10_o isay_n 59.21_o rom._n 10._o v._n 9.10_o my_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n that_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n &c_n &c_n for_o ever_o if_o thou_o confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o in_o thy_o hart_n believe_v that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o with_o the_o hart_n we_o believe_v unto_o justice_n but_o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v to_o salvation_n god_n church_n therefore_o have_v both_o hart_n and_o mouth_n in_o her_o hart_n she_o have_v god_n spirit_n in_o her_o mouth_n his_o word_n and_o these_o be_v not_o two_o church_n but_o one_o church_n 108._o neither_o do_v predestination_n make_v it_o invisible_a as_o childish_o you_o imagine_v the_o predestination_n itself_o indeed_o be_v invisible_a unto_o we_o it_o be_v god_n purpose_n and_o decree_n and_o therefore_o be_v in_o god_n as_o man_n purpose_n be_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o those_o purpose_n even_o in_o man_n be_v secret_a and_o hide_a till_o the_o man_n reveal_v they_o but_o the_o predestinate_v as_o i_o say_v before_o be_v as_o visible_a as_o other_o man_n so_o be_v s._n peter_n s._n paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v visible_a otherwise_o how_o can_v they_o have_v be_v torture_v as_o they_o be_v the_o doctor_n be_v visible_a s._n jerome_n and_o s._n augustine_n be_v know_v far_o and_o near_o and_o to_o come_v near_o to_o our_o time_n s._n francis_n s._n thomas_n of_o aquin_n s._n bonaventure_n s._n charles_n boromeus_n be_v visible_a yet_o predestinate_a whereby_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o predestination_n do_v not_o make_v man_n invisible_a they_o may_v be_v public_a person_n and_o know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o predestinate_a also_o and_o so_o may_v the_o church_n be_v both_o predestinate_a and_o visible_a too_o and_o be_v so_o though_o every_o man_n in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o predestinate_a some_o be_v there_o more_o than_o number_n as_o in_o a_o man_n body_n there_o be_v some_o part_n superfluous_a which_o will_v not_o be_v resume_v in_o the_o resurrection_n as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o former_a book_n and_o these_o part_n be_v like_o the_o rest_n they_o communicate_v with_o the_o rest_n they_o believe_v as_o the_o rest_n but_o they_o do_v not_o persevere_v as_o the_o rest_n now_o which_o those_o be_v that_o will_v persevere_v final_o which_o will_v not_o god_n have_v reserve_v as_o a_o secret_a unto_o himself_o he_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o make_v any_o secretary_n copy_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n the_o sanctity_n of_o some_o in_o all_o time_n he_o make_v know_v for_o the_o example_n and_o encouragement_n and_o confirmation_n of_o other_o by_o such_o sign_n as_o he_o please_v such_o as_o you_o read_v in_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n pen_v by_o saint_n also_o by_o s._n athanasius_n s._n jerome_n s._n augustine_n s._n gregory_n of_o nice_a s._n gregory_n the_o great_a s._n bede_n s._n bernard_n s._n bonaventure_n and_o other_o who_o in_o their_o work_n have_v relate_v diverse_a wonderful_a thing_n of_o holy_a man_n and_o this_o be_v a_o further_a argument_n
it_o have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o this_o that_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o there_o be_v a_o deep_a silence_n in_o the_o world_n and_o no_o protestant_a sermon_n hear_v yea_o luther_n do_v very_o earnest_o listen_v after_o such_o a_o sermon_n 7._o luth._o de_fw-la missa_fw-la pr●uata_fw-la tun_n 7._o but_o his_o learned_a ear_n can_v hear_v none_o save_o only_a from_o the_o devil_n one_o and_o that_o indeed_o he_o have_v register_v in_o his_o writing_n 115._o have_v enter_v into_o the_o consideration_n of_o your_o invisible_a church_n i_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o look_v about_o i_o where_o be_v your_o superintendent_o how_o do_v they_o exercise_v their_o office_n without_o be_v see_v your_o minister_n of_o this_o church_n who_o create_v they_o and_o how_o be_v every_o one_o a_o minister_n or_o some_o sheep_n and_o some_o pastor_n how_o do_v you_o know_v the_o pastor_n from_o the_o sheep_n the_o minister_n from_o other_o man_n be_v all_o apostle_n 28.29_o 1._o cor._n 12._o v._n 28.29_o be_v all_o prophet_n be_v all_o doctor_n be_v all_o miracle_n have_v all_o the_o grace_n of_o cure_n do_v all_o speak_v with_o tongue_n do_v all_o interpret_v who_o do_v who_o do_v not_o how_o may_v one_o know_v how_o do_v you_o know_v 27._o v._o 27._o s._n paul_n say_v some_o verily_a god_n have_v set_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apostle_n secondlie_o prophet_n thirdlie_o doctor_n next_o miracle_n than_o the_o grace_n of_o do_v cure_n help_n goverment_n kind_n of_o tongue_n be_v these_o thing_n in_o the_o invisible_a church_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o there_o how_o be_v it_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v there_o tongue_n in_o that_o deep_a silence_n be_v there_o government_n in_o that_o confusion_n be_v there_o help_v and_o cure_n where_o no_o man_n see_v another_o want_n and_o misery_n miracle_n and_o none_o wonder_v doctor_n and_o no_o scholar_n prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o no_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n where_o be_v the_o pulpit_n where_o be_v your_o communion_n table_n how_o be_v the_o collection_n make_v do_v you_o meet_v only_o in_o the_o night_n or_o in_o the_o day_n or_o not_o at_o all_o what_o call_v you_o together_o if_o you_o meet_v a_o sign_n that_o may_v be_v see_v a_o sound_n that_o may_v be_v hear_v and_o you_o may_v be_v find_v which_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o church_n invisible_a your_o assembly_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o how_o be_v they_o make_v and_o where_o or_o do_v none_o preach_v all_o that_o time_n do_v no_o bishop_n govern_v do_v all_o believe_v and_o so_o long_o and_o so_o ordinary_o without_o preacher_n how_o can_v that_o be_v how_o can_v your_o people_n invocate_v in_o who_o they_o believe_v not_o how_o can_v they_o believe_v who_o they_o hear_v not_o and_o how_o can_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n answer_v for_o your_o church_n and_o teach_v s._n paul_n something_o which_o he_o know_v not_o if_o you_o admit_v government_n and_o instruction_n and_o order_n in_o that_o church_n you_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v visible_a for_o these_o thing_n be_v visible_a if_o you_o deny_v they_o you_o can_v show_v how_o those_o your_o imagine_a predecessor_n have_v any_o faith_n and_o be_v a_o church_n militant_a so_o that_o you_o puzzle_v your_o own_o self_n in_o this_o business_n and_o be_v over_o come_v without_o a_o adversary_n 116._o i_o note_v it_o therefore_o for_o a_o particular_a weakness_n in_o your_o brain_n that_o determine_v to_o feign_v a_o church_n of_o predecessor_n you_o have_v not_o so_o much_o wit_n as_o to_o invent_v a_o thing_n which_o do_v not_o enfold_v a_o contradiction_n in_o itself_o as_o this_o do_v for_o be_v invisible_a it_o have_v no_o preacher_n for_o preacher_n be_v visible_a thing_n now_o where_o there_o be_v no_o preacher_n there_o be_v no_o faith_n where_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o church_n the_o church_n be_v a_o congregation_n or_o society_n of_o faithful_a people_n therefore_o in_o make_v a_o church_n invisible_a you_o make_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o church_n and_o no_o church_n again_o there_o be_v no_o saint_n where_o there_o be_v no_o sanctity_n there_o be_v no_o sanctity_n where_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n no_o faith_n where_o there_o be_v no_o preach_v no_o preach_v where_o the_o be_v no_o mission_n 10.15_o rom._n 10.15_o no_o mission_n where_o there_o be_v no_o government_n no_o government_n where_o there_o be_v no_o governor_n and_o in_o a_o invisible_a company_n there_o be_v no_o governor_n therefore_o from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o there_o be_v in_o it_o no_o saint_n notwithstanding_o it_o have_v nothing_o else_o you_o say_v but_o saint_n so_o that_o it_o have_v people_n in_o it_o it_o be_v a_o society_n of_o saint_n if_o we_o believe_v you_o and_o yet_o have_v not_o a_o saint_n in_o it_o which_o be_v another_o contradiction_n 117._o moreover_o this_o church_n of_o you_o have_v preach_v continual_o protestantisme_n in_o all_o nation_n because_o in_o all_o nation_n you_o have_v have_v saint_n if_o your_o imagination_n be_v admit_v and_o sanctity_n be_v ground_v in_o faith_n ●6_n he_o that_o ●hall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o ●●me_n and_o of_o my_o word_n he_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o when_o he_o ●hall_v come_v ●n_v his_o majesty_n luke_n 9_o ●6_n faith_n get_v by_o hear_v as_o i_o say_v before_o yet_o all_o this_o time_n she_o have_v not_o speak_v but_o be_v ashamed_a of_o her_o own_o faith_n now_o how_o these_o two_o hang_fw-mi together_o do_v you_o judge_v if_o you_o think_v i_o do_v you_o wrong_v in_o accuse_v your_o church_n of_o silence_n take_v in_o hand_n again_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o first_o book_n produce_v evidence_n of_o any_o one_o man_n you_o or_o we_o friend_n or_o foe_n christian_n turk_n or_o atheist_n that_o ever_o hear_v a_o protestant_n speak_v in_o any_o place_n of_o all_o the_o world_n a_o room_n wide_a enough_o in_o any_o part_n of_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n before_o luther_n a_o time_n long_o enough_o or_o ever_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n if_o you_o will_v have_v a_o long_a space_n and_o though_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v for_o a_o church_n of_o all_o nation_n yet_o will_v it_o show_v that_o you_o know_v something_o more_o than_o all_o your_o fellow_n and_o that_o you_o have_v profit_v a_o little_a since_o you_o wrotte_n last_o as_o for_o the_o credibilitie_n of_o your_o device_n they_o will_v believe_v yet_o another_o gospel_n on_o your_o bare_a word_n against_o all_o the_o evidence_n in_o the_o world_n that_o believe_v this_o conceit_n of_o you_o and_o every_o young_a logician_n that_o have_v hear_v his_o master_n talk_v of_o chimaera_n can_v make_v as_o good_a and_o ground_n they_o as_o solidlie_o as_o you_o do_v for_o every_o child_n know_v that_o the_o church_n militant_a be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n serve_v god_n which_o man_n be_v not_o mere_a spirit_n but_o thing_n visible_a the_o society_n of_o they_o also_o be_v a_o thing_n visible_a teach_v baptise_v roll_a convert_n nation_n confute_v heresy_n be_v visible_a act_n 11._o in_o nullum_fw-la nomen_fw-la religionis_fw-la seu_fw-la verum_fw-la seu_fw-la falsum_fw-la coagulari_fw-la homines_fw-la possunt_fw-la nisi_fw-la aliquo_fw-la signaculorum_fw-la vel_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la visibilium_fw-la consortio_fw-la colligentur_fw-la s._n aug._n li._n 19_o cont_n faust_n c._n 11._o and_o act_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n man_n owe_v unto_o god_n visible_a act_n of_o worship_n and_o not_o invisible_a only_o praise_n sacrifice_n sacrament_n be_v visible_a thing_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v visible_a yea_o god_n come_v to_o raise_v this_o church_n do_v exhibit_v himself_o here_o visible_a god_n himself_o be_v see_v with_o man_n eye_n as_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o second_o book_n and_o if_o you_o be_v a_o christian_a you_o believe_v it_o the_o church_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o be_v invisible_a can_v be_v no_o society_n and_o therefore_o no_o church_n and_o as_o it_o be_v no_o church_n but_o a_o chimericall_a non_fw-la ens_fw-la so_o the_o act_n of_o it_o proportionable_o be_v negative_a it_o have_v convert_v no_o nation_n it_o have_v confute_v no_o heresy_n it_o have_v bring_v up_o no_o saint_n before_o luther_n it_o be_v in_o no_o place_n it_o administer_v no_o sacrament_n it_o make_v no_o sermon_n it_o have_v no_o conscience_n no_o mouth_n no_o face_n 118._o unworthy_a therefore_o be_v this_o fiction_n of_o you_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n these_o imaginary_a saint_n of_o you_o to_o the_o saint_n of_o allmightie_a god_n these_o dumb_a preacher_n to_o the_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o their_o successor_n this_o unsociable_a society_n not_o dare_v to_o appear_v or_o whisper_v a_o fore_a man_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n to_o that_o church_n which_o have_v
what_o you_o listen_v you_o set_v upon_o the_o pastor_n it_o be_v define_v in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v successor_n to_o saint_n peter_n and_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v in_o he_o saint_n peter_n from_o our_o saviour_n power_n to_o feed_v and_o to_o govern_v the_o whole_a church_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o you_o can_v abide_v a_o superior_a you_o think_v be_v a_o heavy_a burden_n and_o therefore_o you_o will_v shake_v he_o of_o the_o apostle_n say_v you_o be_v according_a to_o cyprian_a equal_a in_o honour_n and_o dignity_n 84._o cypr._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n jeron_n adu_fw-la jou._n leo_n ep_v 84._o the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n be_v equal_o establish_v on_o they_o all_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o hierom_n and_o with_o leo_n they_o have_v a_o likeness_n in_o honour_n this_o be_v the_o first_o onset_n wherein_o you_o show_v neither_o skill_n nor_o judgement_n you_o have_v but_o late_o discharge_v all_o the_o father_n for_o unable_a man_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o unaduised_a part_n in_o you_o now_o to_o summon_v they_o to_o fight_v under_o your_o colour_n for_o you_o may_v justly_o fear_v that_o in_o time_n of_o trial_n they_o will_v declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v on_o our_o side_n who_o have_v ever_o reverence_v and_o defend_v they_o and_o not_o on_o you_o where_o they_o and_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n church_n be_v dis-esteemed_n and_o contemn_v 3._o but_o i_o answer_v that_o before_o s._n peter_n be_v make_v pastor_n the_o apostle_n be_v all_o equal_a after_o he_o be_v make_v pastor_n they_o be_v not_o equal_a s._n peter_n be_v then_o chief_a and_o superior_a the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v power_n give_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o forgive_v sin_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v to_o do_v miracle_n but_o only_a s._n peter_n have_v the_o prerogative_n of_o pastor_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v evidentlie_o declare_v and_o hereby_o he_o be_v otherwise_o compare_v unto_o the_o flock_n then_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n 52_o ●_o c._n 6._o n._n 52_o with_o who_o he_o have_v all_o the_o forename_a but_o excel_v in_o this_o that_o they_o be_v legate_n or_o apostle_n only_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o general_a jurisdiction_n he_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o father_n which_o you_o have_v cite_v as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o their_o book_n and_o to_o save_v you_o the_o labour_n of_o look_v further_o i_o will_v show_v it_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n you_o allege_v the_o church_n say_v s._n jerom_n be_v found_v on_o peter_n 1._o s._n jeron_n adu_fw-la jovin_n ●_o 1._o though_o in_o another_o place_n it_o be_v do_v upon_o they_o all_o and_o all_o receive_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n be_v equal_o establish_v upon_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v equal_o do_v before_o s._n peter_n be_v make_v pastor_n they_o be_v all_o equal_o make_v apostle_n and_o foundation_n and_o have_v equal_o the_o key_n but_o afterward_o of_o these_o apostle_n thus_o equal_a one_o be_v create_v pastor_n the_o rest_n remain_v as_o they_o be_v who_o remain_v therefore_o unequal_a to_o this_o one_o which_o be_v peter_n 21._o 10._o 21._o as_o you_o know_v by_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n john_n and_o in_o regard_n hereof_o s._n hierome_n do_v add_v immediate_o to_o the_o word_n but_o now_o cite_v yet_o say_v he_o for_o this_o one_o of_o the_o twelve_o be_v choose_v that_o a_o head_n be_v constitute_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o constituto_fw-la capite_fw-la constituto_fw-la so_o now_o they_o be_v unequal_a because_o one_o be_v make_v head_n s._n cyprian_n do_v teach_v the_o same_o in_o the_o place_n you_o cite_v although_o say_v he_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o our_o saviour_n give_v equal_a power_n say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o do_v send_v you_o eccl_n s._n cyp._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl_n take_v the_o holy_a ghost_n &c._n &c._n where_o the_o power_n of_o remit_v sin_n be_v equal_o bestow_v on_o all_o yet_o that_o he_o may_v declare_v unity_n he_o by_o his_o authority_n dispose_v the_o origen_n of_o the_o same_o unity_n begin_v from_z one_o eccl._n one_o quamuis_fw-la apostolis_n omnibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n tamen_fw-la ut_fw-la unitatem_fw-la manifestaret_fw-la unam_fw-la cathedram_fw-la constituit_fw-la &_o unitatis_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la originem_fw-la ab_fw-la uno_fw-la incipientem_fw-la sva_fw-la authoritate_fw-la disposuit_fw-la hoc_fw-la erant_fw-la utique_fw-la &_o caeteri_fw-la apostoli_fw-la quod_fw-la fuit_fw-la petrus_n pari_fw-la consortio_fw-la praediti_fw-la &_o honoris_fw-la &_o potestatis_fw-la sed_fw-la exordium_n ab_fw-la unitate_fw-la proficiscitur_fw-la primatus_fw-la petro_n datur_fw-la ut_fw-la una_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o cathedra_fw-la una_fw-la monstretur_fw-la s._n cypr._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n here_o s._n cyprian_n do_v show_v what_o course_n our_o bless_a saviour_n take_v to_o keep_v manifest_a unity_n in_o his_o church_n and_o among_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o he_o our_o saviour_n dispose_v be_v must_v wise_a a_o origen_n root_n or_o cause_n of_o unity_n which_o unity_n he_o will_v have_v in_o his_o church_n and_o among_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o this_o origen_n or_o root_n be_v not_o a_o multitude_n equal_o govern_v the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v one_o that_o be_v peter_n who_o our_o saviour_n make_v pastor_n of_o his_o church_n and_o upon_o who_o he_o build_v it_o as_o s._n cyp._n note_a a_o little_a before_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v he_o dispose_v the_o origen_n of_o this_o unity_n begin_n from_o one_o so_o that_o we_o have_v in_o this_o very_a place_n the_o primacy_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o root_n and_o origen_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o whole_a body_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n be_v and_o also_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o primacy_n or_o origen_n in_o one._n in_o another_o place_n he_o do_v specify_v it_o more_o particular_o say_v that_o the_o origen_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v the_o chair_n that_o be_v the_o pastoral_a authority_n 12._o navigare_fw-la audent_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la petri_n cathedram_fw-la atque_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la unde_fw-la unitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la li._n 1._o ep_v 3._o una_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la domino_fw-la nostro_fw-la super_fw-la petram_fw-la origine_fw-la unitates_fw-la &_o ratione_fw-la fundata_fw-la l._n 1._o ep_v 12._o of_o peter_n and_o now_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v believe_v it_o be_v his_o mind_n hear_v it_o out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n again_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v on_o a_o rock_n in_o the_o origen_n of_o unity_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v on_o peter_n which_o place_n s._n augustine_n do_v also_o allege_v in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n which_o i_o must_v note_v hereby_o the_o way_n he_o atribute_v express_o the_o primacy_n to_o peter_n last_o s._n cyprian_n say_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v the_o mother_n or_o matrice_n and_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n now_o if_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o foundation_n or_o rock_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o origen_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o he_o be_v as_o s._n jerom_n say_v the_o head_n s._n leo_n do_v teach_v very_o well_o that_o their_o election_n be_v equal_a they_o have_v many_o thing_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n apostolical_a dignity_n equal_o bestow_v on_o they_o but_o afterward_o one_o be_v particular_o make_v pastor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o root_n of_o priestly_a unity_n and_o superior_a to_o the_o 9_o the_o cyprianus_n in_o ep_n ad_fw-la quintum_fw-la ita_fw-la loquor_fw-la nam_fw-la nec_fw-la petrus_n inquit_fw-la quem_fw-la primum_fw-la dominus_fw-la eleget_fw-la &_o super_fw-la quem_fw-la a_o dificavit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la cum_fw-la secum_fw-la paulus_n disceptaret_fw-la etc._n etc._n s._n aug._n l_o 2_o con_v donat._n c._n 1._o apostolum_n petrum_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la primatus_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la tam_fw-la excellenti_fw-la gratia_fw-la praeeminet_fw-la etc._n etc._n ibid._n hortato_n esse_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la matricem_n &_o radicem_fw-la agnoscerent_fw-la &_o tenerent_fw-la s._n cyp._n l._n 4._o ep._n 8._o vide_fw-la eundem_fw-la l._n 1._o ep_v 3._o &_o l._n 4._o ep_n 9_o rest_n praeponatur_fw-la uni_fw-la tamen_fw-la datum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la caeteris_fw-la praeemineret_fw-la s._n leo._n ep_v 84._o s._n leo_n serm_n 3._o de_fw-fr annivers_n ass_n die_v qui_fw-la praeponatur_fw-la which_o do_v they_o be_v not_o in_o all_z respect_n equal_a his_o word_n be_v among_o the_o most_o bless_a apostle_n in_o similitude_n of_o honour_n be_v a_o certain_a distinction_n of_o power_n and_o whereas_o the_o election_n of_o all_o be_v equal_a to_o one_o be_v grant_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v eminent_a above_o
their_o pastor_n he_o redeem_v they_o not_o for_o he_o give_v his_o life_n for_o his_o sheep_n if_o they_o be_v our_o saviour_n sheep_n they_o be_v also_o commend_v to_o saint_n peter_n 10._o 10._o 10._o for_o our_o saviour_n make_v he_o pastor_n of_o his_o sheep_n without_o except_v any_o tr_fw-la by_o this_o you_o may_v understand_v a_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n object_v some_o time_n si_fw-mi hoc_fw-la petro_n tantum_fw-la etc._n etc._n tract_n 50._o in_o joan_n cvius_fw-la eccesiae_n petrus_n apostolus_fw-la propter_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la svi_fw-la primatum_fw-la gerebat_fw-la figurata_fw-la generalitate_fw-la personam_fw-la idem_fw-la aug._n in_o io._n tr_fw-la 6._o your_o exception_n here_o be_v that_o what_o be_v speak_v to_o peter_n be_v speak_v to_o all_o and_o that_o peter_n do_v represent_v the_o church_n when_o he_o take_v authority_n from_o jesus_n christ_n answer_n if_o you_o mean_v it_o be_v in_o proportion_n and_o secondarilie_o speak_v to_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o to_o all_o other_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o the_o world_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o this_o will_v not_o make_v they_o all_o equal_a if_o you_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v equal_o and_o immediate_o say_v to_o all_o your_o gloss_n be_v false_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o text_n he_o say_v to_o he_o peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n peter_n be_v nor_o all_o the_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o representation_n i_o answer_v that_o s._n peter_n take_v the_o office_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o himself_o to_o use_v and_o for_o his_o successor_n and_o for_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o far_o at_o it_o shall_v be_v convenient_a to_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o this_o power_n and_o solicitude_n 108._o ult._n propter_fw-la primatum_fw-la quem_fw-la in_o discipulis_fw-la habuit_fw-la id_fw-la in_o psal_n 108._o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o he_o in_o this_o do_v represent_v they_o all_o according_a as_o i_o have_v declare_v because_o all_o his_o successor_n and_o all_o inferior_a pastor_n to_o the_o world_n end_n can_v not_o in_o their_o own_o person_n be_v there_o to_o receive_v this_o power_n and_o the_o church_n herself_o be_v not_o otherwise_o to_o take_v the_o power_n i_o speak_v of_o but_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o her_o pastor_n because_o the_o community_n of_o christian_n can_v not_o exercise_v that_o office_n of_o govern_v or_o be_v pastor_n in_o regard_n this_o community_n be_v the_o flock_n 8._o by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v here_o in_o this_o chapter_n you_o find_v exclude_v your_o fellow_n tale_n of_o phocas_n first_o institute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o general_a pastor_n in_o the_o church_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v believe_v gualterius_fw-la io._n 21._o cite_v in_o coccius_n and_o gualterius_fw-la our_o saviour_n do_v institute_v this_o office_n or_o authority_n and_o thus_o much_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o exercise_v by_o the_o pope_n successor_n to_o saint_n peter_n before_o phocas_n ever_o appear_v in_o this_o world_n it_o be_v true_a that_o emperor_n may_v second_v what_o our_o saviour_n have_v ordain_v before_o to_o the_o end_n the_o imperial_a decree_n thus_o wait_v on_o the_o divine_a institution_n man_n respect_v the_o temporal_a power_n may_v stand_v in_o fear_n to_o transgress_v who_o will_v otherwise_o prevaricate_v notwithstanding_o the_o divine_a institution_n so_o many_o forbear_v steal_v for_o fear_n of_o temporal_a law_n who_o god_n eternal_a law_n will_v not_o move_v to_o forbear_v in_o this_o kind_n phocas_n decree_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v account_v head_n though_o the_o title_n be_v due_a to_o he_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o high_a institution_n and_o he_o style_v head_n of_o bishop_n before_o this_o as_o you_o may_v find_v in_o the_o four_o general_a ibid._n general_a quibus_fw-la tu_fw-la quidem_fw-la sicut_fw-la membris_fw-la caput_fw-la praeeras_fw-la etc._n etc._n conc._n chalc._n ad_fw-la leonem_fw-la rogamus_fw-la &_o tuis_fw-la decretis_fw-la nostrum_fw-la honora_fw-la in_o iudicium_fw-la &_o sicut_fw-la nos_fw-la capiti_fw-la in_o bonis_fw-la adiecimus_fw-la consonantiam_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o summitas_fw-la tua_fw-la filijs_fw-la quod_fw-la decet_fw-la adimpleat_fw-la ibid._n council_n neither_o do_v the_o title_n of_o ecumenical_a or_o universal_a bishop_n in_o the_o sense_n we_o take_v it_o any_o way_n derogate_v unto_o the_o rest_n their_o title_n of_o bishop_n as_o philosopher_n give_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a cause_n to_o a_o cause_n supereminent_a as_o to_o the_o sun_n or_o to_o god_n hereby_o take_v not_o away_o the_o name_n of_o cause_n from_o particular_a in_o this_o low_a world_n as_o from_o horse_n fire_n man_n but_o yet_o if_o you_o take_v universal_a in_o a_o other_o sense_n not_o for_o that_o which_o be_v eminent_a over_o many_o particular_n but_o for_o that_o which_o so_o have_v all_o within_o itself_o that_o none_o answer_v to_o the_o name_n be_v without_o it_o as_o antichrist_n as_o si_fw-mi unus_fw-la patriarcha_fw-la universalis_fw-la dicitur_fw-la patriarcharum_fw-la nomen_fw-la caeteris_fw-la derogatur_fw-la s_o greg._n l._n 4._o ep_n 36._o put_v that_o of_o cause_n in_o the_o same_o form_n si_fw-mi una_fw-la causa_fw-la universalis_fw-la dicitur_fw-la causarum_fw-la nomen_fw-la caeteris_fw-la derogatur_fw-la and_o tell_v i_o now_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o proposition_n be_v true_a si_fw-mi universalem_fw-la i_o papam_fw-la vestra_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la dicit_fw-la negate_fw-la se_fw-la hoc_fw-la esse_fw-la quod_fw-la i_o fatetur_fw-la universum_fw-la ●_o greg._n l._n 7._o ep_n 36._o indic_n 1._o ad_fw-la eulog_fw-la alex_n he_o that_o in_o this_o sense_n shall_v arrogate_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v a_o fore_a runner_n of_o antichrist_n saint_n gregory_n do_v understand_v it_o so_o neither_o be_v the_o sun_n a_o universal_a cause_n nor_o the_o pope_n universal_a bishop_n because_o there_o be_v more_o cause_n beside_o the_o sun_n and_o more_o bishop_n beside_o the_o pope_n the_o second_o chapter_n the_o pope_n above_o other_o bishop_n i_o have_v do_v with_o the_o comparison_n of_o saint_n peter_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o follow_v now_o that_o i_o consider_v what_o comparison_n his_o successor_n the_o pope_n have_v unto_o the_o patriarch_n and_o other_o bishop_n your_o labour_n be_v to_o equal_v other_o with_o he_o in_o authority_n to_o this_o purpose_n you_o first_o make_v use_n of_o the_o grecian_n proceed_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n where_o the_o bishop_n you_o say_v do_v equal_v the_o constantinopolitan_a see_v with_o the_o roman_a i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o adequation_n pretend_v be_v not_o in_o original_n or_o prime_a authority_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o privilege_n as_o in_o the_o word_n it_o be_v express_o set_v down_o to_o enjoy_v equal_a privilege_n etc._n etc._n 16._o aequis_fw-la senioris_fw-la regius_fw-la roma_fw-la privilegiis_fw-la fr●●●_n etc._n etc._n conc._n chalc._o ac●●_n 16._o now_o privilege_n be_v a_o distinct_a thing_n from_o original_a authority_n and_o accessory_a thereunto_o the_o privilege_n they_o do_v aim_n at_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v in_o his_o proportion_n have_v a_o majesty_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n above_o other_o see_v rome_n except_v in_o regard_n that_o constantinople_n be_v then_o the_o imperial_a seat_n as_o before_o rome_n have_v be_v and_o therefore_o that_o he_o shall_v take_v place_n of_o other_o patriarch_n and_o be_v second_o or_o next_o after_o he_o of_o rome_n and_o with_o all_o that_o he_o shall_v ordain_v metropolitan_n in_o the_o diocese_n of_o pontus_n asia_n and_o thrace_n these_o privilege_n they_o do_v aim_v at_o and_o hereby_o will_v have_v have_v a_o kind_n of_o analogy_n with_o the_o roman_a bishop_n this_o attempt_n of_o the_o grecian_n leo_n then_o pope_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n approve_v and_o the_o decree_n which_o the_o bishop_n have_v conceive_v he_o do_v anulle_a we_o do_v utter_o say_v he_o make_v void_a and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n aug._n s._n leo._n ep._n 55._o ad_fw-la pull_n aug._n do_v with_o a_o general_a definition_n whole_o disannul_v the_o consent_n or_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o canon_n make_v at_o nice_a hence_o i_o answer_v secondlie_o that_o the_o decree_n want_v the_o consent_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v not_o ecumenical_a and_o therefore_o be_v it_o understand_v of_o original_a authority_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a it_o be_v not_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n will_v therein_o not_o by_o proportion_n only_o but_o absolute_o have_v equal_v a_o other_o bishop_n with_o the_o roman_a it_o will_v not_o suffice_v because_o a_o council_n when_o it_o be_v not_o ecumenical_a do_v not_o contain_v the_o full_a power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o define_v or_o make_v decree_n but_o may_v mistake_v and_o err_v 10._o since_o
prototyporum_fw-la memariam_fw-la &_o recordasionem_fw-la &_o desiderium_fw-la veniant_fw-la illisque_fw-la salutationem_fw-la &_o honorariam_fw-la adorationem_fw-la exhibeant_fw-la non_fw-fr secundum_fw-la fidem_fw-la nostram_fw-la veram_n latriam_fw-la qua_fw-la solùm_fw-la divinae_fw-la naturae_fw-la competit_fw-la definitio_fw-la conc._n nic._n 2._o act_n 7._o legatur_fw-la epistola_fw-la concelij_fw-la ad_fw-la impp._n in_o fine_a eiusdem_fw-la actionis_fw-la to_o this_o decree_n the_o church_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n refer_v itself_o sess_n 25._o and_o say_v only_o we_o be_v to_o give_v image_n debitum_fw-la honerem_fw-la &_o venerationem_fw-la leave_v the_o further_a specification_n of_o this_o honour_n to_o be_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o nicene_n decree_n further_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v adore_v per_fw-la se_fw-la and_o per_fw-la accidens_fw-la and_o by_o this_o i_o leave_v you_o to_o understand_v the_o schoolman_n for_o i_o speak_v here_o only_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n poet_n and_o rhetorician_n have_v their_o figure_n must_v a_o general_n and_o approve_a council_n be_v condemn_v with_o such_o beggar_o uncoherent_a proole_n as_o this_o etc._n magdeb._n cent_n 8._o c._n 9_o col_fw-fr 636._o quare_fw-la contra_fw-la adriani_n pontificis_fw-la &_o legatorum_fw-la eius_fw-la sententiam_fw-la decernunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o church_n have_v ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o then_o too_o believe_v that_o such_o a_o council_n can_v err_v and_o therefore_o you_o must_v produce_v better_a evidence_n better_v they_o that_o which_o plant_v christianity_n if_o you_o will_v make_v she_o in_o her_o old_a age_n change_v he_o creed_n 19_o but_o suppose_v the_o franckfort_n council_n have_v condemn_v all_o kind_n of_o honour_n do_v to_o image_n which_o thing_n you_o do_v further_o pretend_v but_o can_v prove_v this_o be_v nothing_o against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n and_o decree_n for_o that_o decree_n of_o those_o bishop_n assemble_v there_o out_o of_o the_o western_a part_n have_v want_v the_o consent_n of_o other_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n it_o have_v want_v also_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a without_o which_o no_o decree_n be_v or_o be_v ever_o by_o the_o church_n esteem_v ecumenical_a counsel_n adrian_z them_z pope_n refute_v the_o canoline_n book_n and_o maintain_v honour_v of_o image_n as_o appear_v clear_o by_o his_o book_n to_o the_o emperor_n ye●_n extant_a in_o the_o tome●_n of_o counsel_n 20._o the_o second_o objection_n in_o this_o kind_n be_v that_o two_o ecumenical_a decree_n one_o make_v in_o the_o a_o laterane_n council_n the_o other_o b_o at_o constance_n be_v opposite_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n one_o will_v have_v the_o council_n under_o the_o pope_n the_o other_o over_o whence_o you_o infer_v that_o the_o church_n do_v contradict_v herself_o in_o believe_v both_o stay_v sir_n not_o so_o fast_o the_o church_n have_v not_o both_o part_n of_o any_o opposition_n in_o her_o creed_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o streingth_n of_o your_o argument_n if_o you_o shall_v avouch_v that_o you_o see_v two_o lion_n fight_v it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o the_o verity_n of_o your_o relation_n that_o the_o thing_n which_o you_o see_v do_v fight_v or_o that_o they_o be_v lion_n for_o if_o one_o be_v a_o lion_n the_o other_o a_o bear_n or_o if_o both_o be_v lion_n but_o do_v agree_v and_o not_o fight_v your_o relation_n will_v be_v laugh_v at_o to_o make_v good_a your_o argument_n you_o must_v prove_v here_o two_o thing_n one_o be_v that_o these_o be_v decree_n and_o each_o oecmenicall_a the_o other_o that_o one_o of_o they_o in_o sense_n be_v contradictory_n to_o the_o other_o then_o further_o if_o you_o will_v accuse_v the_o church_n you_o must_v prove_v that_o she_o believe_v they_o both_o in_o those_o contradictory_n sense_n your_o labour_n will_v not_o be_v unprofitable_a if_o you_o 11_o you_o n●c_fw-la illud_fw-la nos_fw-la move●●_n debet_fw-la quod_fw-la sanctio_fw-la etc._n etc._n eum_fw-la etiam_fw-la solum_fw-la romanun_n pontificem_fw-la pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la existentem_fw-la tanquam_fw-la authoritaté_fw-fr supre_fw-fr omne_fw-la concilia_fw-la habentem_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la ind●cendorum_fw-la transferendorun_v ac_fw-la dissoluendorun_v plenum_fw-la ius_fw-la &_o potestatem_fw-la habere_fw-la nedum_fw-la ex_fw-la sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la testimoniis_fw-la dictis_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la ac_fw-la aliorum_fw-la romanorum_fw-la pontificum_fw-la etiam_fw-la praedecessorum_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la sacrorumque_fw-la canonum_fw-la decretis_fw-la sed_fw-la propria_fw-la etiam_fw-la eorundem_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la confession_n manifestè_fw-la constet_fw-la quorum_fw-la aliqua_fw-la refer_v platuit_n etc._n etc._n conc._n lateran_n sub_fw-la leone_n 10._o sess_n 11_o 4._o 11_o ispa_n synodus_fw-la in_o s._n s._n congregata_fw-la legitimè_fw-la generale_fw-mi concilium_fw-la faciens_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la militantem_fw-la repraesentans_fw-la potestatem_fw-la a_o christo_fw-la immediatè_fw-la habet_fw-la tui_fw-la quilibet_fw-la cuiuscunque_fw-la status_fw-la vel_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la papalis_fw-la existat_fw-la obedire_fw-la tenetur_fw-la in_o his_o quae_fw-la pertinent_a ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la &_o extirpationem_fw-la dicti_fw-la schismatis_fw-la &_o reformationem_fw-la generalem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o capite_fw-la &_o in_fw-la membris_fw-la conc._n constant_a sess_v 4._o can_v efficaciouslie_o prove_v and_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o one_o of_o they_o be_v such_o a_o definition_n as_o you_o speak_v of_o and_o that_o which_o soever_o it_o be_v we_o all_o will_n admit_v and_o thank_v you_o too_o but_o i_o must_v advise_v you_o of_o the_o difficulty_n you_o be_v to_o find_v herein_o be_v such_o as_o great_a scholar_n than_o i_o take_v you_o for_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o overcome_v 21._o first_o therefore_o you_o be_v to_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o in_o the_o lateran_n council_n the_o superiority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v formal_o define_v and_o that_o the_o word_n wherein_o it_o be_v attribute_v unto_o he_o or_o acknowledge_v as_o belong_v unto_o he_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o decree_n for_o a_o council_n define_v not_o every_o thing_n which_o it_o say_v secondlie_o you_o be_v to_o make_v it_o evident_a &c_n reflect_v in_o who_o time_n and_o where_o it_o be_v how_o thing_n stand_v in_o france_n &c_n &c_n that_o the_o council_n be_v ecumenical_a and_o that_o it_o be_v open_a and_o free_a to_o all_o bishop_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n thirdlie_o you_o must_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o decree_n of_o constance_n be_v not_o limit_v in_o circumstance_n and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o speak_v only_o of_o such_o a_o pope_n as_o be_v doubtful_a or_o in_o case_n of_o heresy_n or_o schism_n but_o absolute_o of_o any_o whatsoever_o fourthlie_o you_o must_v also_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o decree_n be_v ecumenical_a or_o the_o general_n decree_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o of_o one_o obedience_n only_o other_o two_o not_o consent_v these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o many_o and_o obscure_a difficulty_n which_o hitherto_o learned_a man_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o see_v through_o and_o therefore_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o controversy_n lie_v hide_v so_o as_o neither_o part_n be_v cleerelie_o know_v for_o ā_o ecumenical_a decree_n or_o definition_n though_o you_o rash_o and_o most_o ignorantlie_o have_v affirm_v it_o of_o they_o both_o which_o you_o do_v to_o make_v show_n of_o good_a form_n in_o your_o argument_n every_o one_o know_v that_o a_o contradiction_n betwixt_o ecumenical_a decree_n do_v suppose_v that_o both_o part_n contradict_v be_v ecumenical_a 22._o another_o part_n of_o your_o argument_n be_v that_o ita_fw-la be_v contradiction_n and_o this_o part_n must_v be_v prove_v also_o and_o make_v evident_a before_o your_o argument_n recover_v strength_n but_o it_o be_v so_o far_o out_o your_o power_n that_o suppose_v all_o the_o rest_n be_v dissemble_v you_o can_v never_o be_v able_a to_o make_v it_o good_a that_o be_v to_o prove_v and_o demonstrate_v that_o one_o be_v opposite_a or_o contradictory_n to_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o you_o do_v most_o undiscreetelie_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o general_n counsel_n reverence_v ever_o by_o the_o church_n and_o direct_v by_o god_n spiritte_v out_o of_o fear_n or_o apprehension_n of_o a_o contradiction_n which_o in_o the_o laterane_n and_o that_o of_o constance_n you_o think_v you_o see_v the_o scholar_n who_o reject_v aristotle_n or_o justinian_n or_o the_o bible_n for_o every_o seem_a contradiction_n will_v never_o be_v good_a philosopher_n nor_o good_a lawyer_n nor_o good_a divine_a 23._o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o the_o decree_n whereon_o you_o insist_v be_v at_o first_o not_o make_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o of_o three_o obedience_n which_o then_o be_v one_o only_a that_o be_v johns_n obedience_n or_o party_n make_v it_o the_o other_o two_o not_o be_v unite_v unto_o they_o so_o that_o if_o you_o take_v it_o as_o proceed_n from_o those_o
the_o stile_n and_o phrase_n of_o speech_n give_v they_o no_o satisfaction_n at_o all_o for_o they_o so_o disesteem_v it_o in_o this_o respect_n peculiarlie_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o stile_n and_o matter_n they_o profess_v themselves_o move_v to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a and_o to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o canonical_a book_n if_o you_o answer_v that_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o spiritte_v you_o discern_v it_o you_o move_v they_o not_o for_o they_o claim_v as_o great_a a_o interest_n as_o full_a a_o participation_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o yourselves_o and_o therefore_o you_o move_v not_o they_o to_o believe_v as_o you_o do_v but_o suppose_v if_o you_o will_v that_o all_o antiquity_n stand_v on_o your_o side_n what_o can_v this_o prevail_v to_o move_v a_o lutheran_n to_o believe_v the_o matter_n or_o to_o confirm_v your_o disciple_n who_o stagger_v at_o your_o want_n of_o proof_n what_o can_v this_o avail_n i_o say_v see_v that_o it_o be_v agree_v among_o you_o that_o the_o church_n that_o all_o the_o father_n that_o all_o man_n since_o the_o apostle_n may_v have_v agree_v in_o a_o error_n 27._o according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o religion_n every_o catholic_a can_v answer_v easy_o that_o whatsoever_o by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v receive_v for_o divine_a scripture_n be_v infallible_o such_o because_o the_o church_n be_v direct_v by_o god_n all-seeing_a spirit_n which_o can_v discern_v it_o well_o and_o suppose_v the_o catholic_a be_v unlearned_a and_o that_o all_o of_o you_o together_o both_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n shall_v pretend_v that_o in_o the_o book_n there_o want_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o seek_v to_o maintain_v this_o with_o a_o show_n of_o opposition_n either_o within_o itself_o or_o to_o some_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n or_o to_o reason_n which_o thing_n you_o do_v many_o time_n pretend_v as_o julian_n and_o porphyry_n and_o other_o have_v do_v before_o he_o will_v answer_v you_o all_o without_o difficulty_n by_o recourse_n to_o the_o divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o church_n which_o he_o take_v for_o a_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n believe_v heretofore_o by_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o warrant_v by_o god_n himself_o in_o clear_a term_n and_o will_v say_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o assist_v be_v more_o certain_a than_o the_o contrary_a pretence_n of_o any_o adverse_a part_n whatsoever_o and_o she_o more_o able_a to_o espy_v contradiction_n error_n or_o opposition_n they_o any_o other_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o direct_v she_o and_o with_o a_o infinite_a understanding_n look_v earnest_o upon_o all._n in_o virtue_n of_o which_o assistance_n she_o have_v maintain_v scripture_n against_o heathen_n and_o apostate_n and_o misbelieve_a jew_n and_o heretic_n hitherto_o and_o still_o do_v and_o will_v do_v further_o more_o a_o catholic_a do_v not_o think_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o book_n which_o he_o believe_v to_o be_v scripture_n have_v be_v ever_o universallie_o by_o the_o church_n esteem_v so_o he_o know_v it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v at_o any_o time_n believe_v it_o for_o one_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v err_v at_o all_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o can_v err_v in_o any_o age_n in_o any_o tyme._n and_o this_o principle_n have_v ever_o be_v believe_v by_o catholik_o moreover_o that_o which_o at_o any_o time_n she_o believe_v have_v be_v enfold_v in_o her_o faith_n at_o other_o time_n and_o so_o virtuallie_o believe_v ever_o and_o by_o all_o 29._o now_o to_o your_o opposition_n whereas_o you_o say_v that_o of_o late_a only_a some_o book_n have_v be_v take_v into_o the_o canon_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o such_o book_n as_o yourselves_o do_v receive_v for_o canonical_a be_v not_o all_o at_o once_o universallie_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n but_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o degree_n prologue_n s._n hieron_n de_fw-fr viris_fw-la illustribus_fw-la in_o paulo_n jacobo_n petro_n &_o joamne_n &_o in_o ep._n ad_fw-la dardan_n itemque_fw-la in_o prologue_n so_o much_o you_o know_v by_o those_o i_o have_v already_o name_v and_o s._n hierom_n can_v tell_v you_o more_o yet_o be_v these_o also_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v such_o in_o themselves_o before_o it_o be_v general_o know_v unto_o the_o world_n as_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n and_o his_o increated_a word_n before_o the_o world_n do_v know_v or_o believe_v he_o so_o to_o be_v the_o reason_n be_v because_o man_n knowledge_n be_v late_a than_o the_o verity_n and_o the_o more_o obscure_a the_o thing_n be_v the_o long_o he_o be_v ordinary_o before_o he_o can_v find_v it_o out_o secondlie_o it_o be_v not_o so_o late_o as_o you_o think_v since_o these_o book_n be_v in_o the_o church_n esteem_v 36._o cit._n bellarm_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 1._o vide_fw-la baron_fw-fr a_fw-fr 415_o august_n ep_v 235._o &_o the_o doct_n chr._n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o innocent_n ep._n 3._o ad_fw-la exuper_fw-la c._n 7._o &_o can._n sancta_fw-la rom_n d._n 15._o jerem._n 36._o canonical_a and_o divine_a though_o not_o so_o general_o as_o i_o note_v before_o for_o you_o find_v they_o cite_v for_o such_o in_o the_o father_n writing_n very_o oft_o and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o you_o have_v a_o catalogue_n of_o they_o all_o the_o very_a same_o which_o you_o find_v now_o deliver_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n save_v only_o that_o baruch_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v acknowledge_v also_o for_o divine_a be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o those_o time_n comprise_v with_o jeremie_n who_o secretary_n you_o know_v he_o be_v i_o add_v thirdlie_o that_o whereas_o s._n augustine_n who_o subscribe_v to_o the_o foresay_a council_n do_v prescribe_v a_o rule_n for_o young_a divines_n to_o find_v which_o scripture_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n bid_v they_o prefer_v that_o which_o all_o church_n do_v receive_v before_o that_o which_o be_v receive_v only_o by_o some_o church_n or_o some_o part_n we_o now_o see_v the_o foresay_a canon_n receive_v at_o length_n by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n and_o this_o declare_v in_o a_o general_n council_n must_v and_o do_v yeaven_n by_o s._n augustine_n rule_n receive_v it_o all_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o authority_n all_o there_o be_v no_o sure_a ground_n of_o man_n faith_n in_o such_o a_o case_n then_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n the_o like_a i_o answer_v they_o also_o who_o run_v to_o the_o jew_n canon_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o christian_n church_n be_v no_o less_o able_a to_o discern_v a_o verity_n than_o they_o be_v and_o therefore_o if_o the_o christian_n church_n at_o any_o time_n declare_v a_o book_n to_o be_v divine_a though_o the_o jew_n know_v it_o not_o we_o believe_v it_o and_o must_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v err_v the_o jew_n know_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v teach_v his_o church_n 30._o the_o second_o exception_n be_v unreasonable_a if_o you_o consider_v well_o what_o be_v do_v and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o all_o scholar_n as_o you_o know_v do_v no_o not_o addict_v their_o study_n to_o the_o tongue_n the_o hebrew_n be_v so_o obscure_a that_o few_o do_v attain_v unto_o any_o reasonable_a knowledge_n of_o it_o and_o none_o at_o all_o in_o these_o late_a time_n especial_o to_o the_o comprehension_n of_o the_o tongue_n but_o by_o help_n of_o dictionary_n compile_v by_o such_o as_o come_v short_a of_o the_o thing_n itself_o 〈…〉_o of_o the_o 〈…〉_o or_o of_o modern_a jew_n not_o equal_a to_o the_o learned_a of_o the_o time_n wherein_o the_o book_n be_v first_o write_v do_v endeavour_n what_o they_o can_v this_o experience_n have_v teach_v we_o 34_o elias_n 〈…〉_o in_o hab●●●_n vide_fw-la genebrard_n in_o psal_n 104._o serrar_n prol._n bibl._n c._n 19_o q._n 6._o aliquoties_fw-la dixi_fw-la plurima_fw-la vocabula_fw-la esse_fw-la quorum_fw-la significatio_fw-la ipsis_fw-la etiam_fw-la hebraeis_n ignota_fw-la est_fw-la luth._o in_o gen._n c._n 34_o it_o be_v evident_a also_o in_o the_o continuation_n and_o transfusion_n of_o all_o language_n to_o posterity_n and_o rabbin_n themselves_o do_v confess_v it_o in_o regard_n therefore_o that_o scholar_n common_o understand_v not_o hebrew_n it_o have_v ever_o be_v think_v convenient_a the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v translate_v into_o such_o a_o language_n as_o general_o they_o do_v know_v which_o be_v latin_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v practise_v and_o among_o you_o it_o be_v allow_v also_o in_o so_o much_o that_o your_o predecessor_n luther_n caluin_n beza_n junius_n and_o other_o
have_v make_v every_o one_o his_o own_o translation_n to_o bind_v his_o fellow_n there_o unto_o as_o the_o best_a and_o you_o have_v not_o yet_o do_v translate_n and_o change_v your_o translation_n whereas_o none_o of_o you_o can_v deny_v and_o all_o wise_a man_n do_v see_v that_o if_o one_o translation_n can_v be_v general_o agree_v upon_o it_o be_v best_o now_o further_o because_o elder_a time_n as_o be_v near_o to_o the_o writer_n have_v better_a help_n and_o pure_a copy_n it_o be_v better_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o man_n the_o translation_n be_v old_a and_o make_v in_o those_o time_n rather_o than_o now_o in_o this_o scarcity_n of_o copy_n this_o obscurity_n of_o the_o language_n this_o want_n of_o the_o mean_n which_o then_o be_v 4._o conc_fw-fr try_v sess_n 4._o this_o consider_v the_o catholic_a church_n have_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o among_o latin_a translation_n the_o old_a and_o common_a by_o the_o long_a use_n of_o many_o age_n approve_v in_o the_o church_n stand_v authentic_a and_o be_v take_v for_o bible_n it_o be_v not_o any_o where_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n that_o in_o the_o clementine_n edition_n the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n be_v full_o restore_v to_o the_o primitive_a integrity_n in_o all_o part_n and_o word_n our_o belief_n do_v follow_v the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n what_o she_o define_v we_o receive_v those_o who_o be_v use_v in_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o translation_n say_v thus_o accipa_n christiano_n lector_n clement_n summo_fw-la pontifico_fw-la annvente_fw-la veterem_fw-la ac_fw-la vulgatam_fw-la sacra_fw-la scripturae_fw-la editionem_fw-la quanta_fw-la fieri_fw-la potuit_fw-la diligentia_fw-la castigatam_fw-la quam_fw-la quidem_fw-la sicut_fw-la omnibus_fw-la numeris_fw-la absolutam_fw-la pro_fw-la humana_fw-la imbecillitate_fw-la affirmare_fw-la deffieile_fw-fr est_fw-la ita_fw-la caeteris_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la hanc_fw-la usque_fw-la diem_fw-la prodierunt_fw-la emendatiorem_fw-la purioremque_fw-la esse_fw-la minimè_fw-la dubitandum_fw-la praefat._n ad_fw-la lect_n some_o of_o sixtus_n bibles_n may_v be_v surreptitious_o scatter_v and_o james_n may_v get_v a_o copy_n but_o they_o be_v never_o open_o sell_v in_o catholic_a country_n and_o the_o church_n never_o believe_v the_o correction_n to_o be_v so_o accurate_a that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v amend_v decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n for_o the_o fullnes_n of_o either_o correction_n i_o speak_v of_o they_o as_o of_o two_o in_o that_o sense_n as_o james_n do_v you_o know_v there_o be_v none_o a_o bull_n take_v not_o force_n from_o the_o printer_n nor_o from_o the_o secretary_n and_o james_n can_v prove_v that_o sixtus_n his_o bull_n be_v ever_o authenticallie_o publish_v by_o the_o record_v no_o such_o thing_n appear_v the_o church_n know_v not_o of_o it_o if_o it_o have_v be_v it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o accord_v all_o remember_v what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n touch_v pretend_v opposition_n in_o decree_n and_o what_o i_o have_v ●eere_o cite_v out_o of_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o bible_n such_o i_o tell_v you_o before_o wise_a man_n will_v have_v but_o one_o and_o this_o one_o to_o have_v be_v make_v long_o ago_o when_o it_o may_v better_o be_v perform_v and_o to_o be_v look_v on_o by_o diverse_a able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o goodness_n and_o better_a able_a and_o more_o impartial_a than_o ourselves_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o wise_a have_v not_o the_o decree_n at_o all_o be_v make_v will_v yet_o have_v choose_v this_o it_o be_v the_o old_a and_o common_a translation_n for_o it_o be_v make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n review_v in_o those_o day_n by_o s._n hierome_n compare_v since_o by_o learned_a man_n in_o all_o age_n to_o such_o original_n as_o in_o each_o age_n they_o can_v find_v and_o use_v by_o the_o church_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n 30._o the_o fountain_n we_o reverence_v too_o and_o more_o full_o than_o you_o do_v admit_v and_o believe_v whatsoever_o can_v be_v manifest_o prove_v to_o belong_v justly_o thereunto_o to_o the_o very_a last_o word_n and_o letter_n and_o it_o be_v ignorance_n in_o you_o to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n they_o be_v reject_v the_o decree_n speak_v of_o latin_a edition_n only_o ex_fw-la omnibus_fw-la latinis_fw-la editionibus_fw-la quae_fw-la circumferuntur_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o make_v choice_n of_o one_o by_o general_a use_n long_o before_o approve_v true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o fountain_n itself_o in_o some_o place_n be_v call_v in_o question_n 13._o calu._n in_o in_o zach_n 11._o &_o inst_z l._n 1._o c_o 13._o and_o caluin_n your_o master_n do_v imagine_v that_o it_o run_v not_o always_o cleerlie_o as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o his_o institution_n 9_o luth._o enar_n in_o esa_n c_o 9_o luther_n cry_v out_o on_o the_o jew_n for_o crucify_a the_o text_n and_o what_o difficulty_n the_o rabbin_n themselves_o have_v appear_v clear_o by_o their_o great_a massore_v we_o have_v more_o help_n than_o you_o all_o to_o know_v the_o truth_n in_o this_o question_n too_o we_o admit_v the_o doctrine_n of_o tradition_n so_o must_v the_o jew_n so_o must_v you_o otherwise_o you_o know_v not_o which_o be_v text_n we_o have_v also_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o church_n to_o declare_v the_o verity_n and_o power_n of_o original_n where_o the_o general_a necessity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v require_v it_o and_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o believe_v their_o purity_n and_o integrity_n so_o far_o as_o there_o be_v sufficient_a warrant_n for_o it_o 31._o but_o how_o come_v these_o corruption_n into_o the_o bible_n this_o question_v you_o shall_v have_v put_v unto_o your_o master_n for_o my_o part_n i_o think_v the_o resolution_n of_o it_o nothing_o at_o all_o necessary_a for_o our_o purpose_n writer_n may_v easy_o mistake_v especial_o consider_v the_o little_a difference_n of_o many_o hebrew_n character_n and_o the_o niceness_n of_o the_o point_n and_o suppose_v the_o point_n be_v take_v of_o there_o will_v be_v find_v some_o fault_n in_o the_o letter_n i_o know_v the_o jew_n be_v man_n and_o therefore_o if_o god_n assistance_n be_v not_o in_o the_o business_n their_o labour_n in_o count_a letter_n give_v i_o no_o security_n for_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o their_o copy_n be_v exact_a that_o the_o letter_n be_v du_o order_v etc._n etc._n which_o be_v requisite_a because_o the_o disposition_n and_o combination_n of_o the_o same_o letter_n may_v be_v diverse_a not_o only_o in_o one_o period_n which_o may_v serve_v to_o change_v the_o sense_n but_o in_o the_o same_o very_a word_n and_o of_o the_o integrity_n in_o this_o kind_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o sense_n as_o also_o of_o the_o exact_a integrity_n of_o the_o copy_n which_o they_o number_v you_o can_v give_v no_o general_a warrant_n again_o beside_o the_o difficulty_n or_o impossibility_n of_o this_o you_o will_v be_v sore_o trouble_v yea_o it_o be_v unpossible_a for_o you_o proceed_v in_o your_o protestant_a principle_n to_o give_v satisfaction_n yeaven_n to_o your_o own_o fellow_n in_o any_o part_n of_o scripture_n whatsoever_o because_o you_o maintain_v that_o all_o man_n notwithstanding_o the_o promise_n which_o god_n have_v make_v unto_o the_o church_n may_v have_v err_v and_o consequent_o s._n jerom_n and_o s._n augustine_n and_o other_o be_v man_n may_v likewise_o have_v do_v so_o in_o determine_v or_o judge_v which_o scripture_n or_o writing_n be_v divine_a especial_o since_o each_o part_n each_o verse_n be_v not_o a_o fundamental_a as_o you_o speak_v i_o be_o not_o trouble_v at_o all_o in_o the_o business_n but_o let_v the_o learned_a scan_v the_o difficulty_n and_o sift_v thing_n out_o remain_v ever_o ready_a to_o believe_v what_o the_o church_n have_v or_o hereafter_o shall_v resolve_v touch_v the_o purity_n the_o interpretation_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a or_o any_o part_n place_n or_o word_n of_o the_o text_n you_o and_o your_o protestant_a congregation_n with_o your_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a have_v no_o mean_n to_o determine_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o scripture_n touch_v book_n part_n verse_n word_n interpretation_n as_o in_o a_o other_o place_n i_o have_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n 33._o when_o we_o dispute_v you_o grant_v the_o real_a presence_n not_o able_a otherwise_o to_o make_v answer_n to_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n but_o when_o you_o dispute_v you_o declare_v manifest_o that_o you_o believe_v it_o not_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v you_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n can_v be_v under_o the_o form_n or_o shape_n of_o bread_n that_o the_o same_o thing_n can_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o the_o alter_v too_o if_o
immolate_a there_o be_v no_o unbloodie_a d_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n be_v not_o on_o the_o e_o altar_n he_o be_v not_o offer_v in_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o priest_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o f_z again_o sacrifice_v for_o we_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o g_o dispense_v from_o the_o altar_n compare_v 52._o seaventh_o the_o father_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v present_a to_o our_o body_n and_o mouth_n when_o we_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v another_o evident_a argument_n that_o they_o think_v it_o substantial_o present_a here_o on_o earth_n where_o our_o body_n be_v for_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n only_o can_v be_v so_o present_a we_o deny_v not_o that_o we_o be_v spiritual_o join_v unto_o christ_n by_o true_a faith_n and_o sincere_a charity_n 13._o s._n cyr._n alex_n l._n 10._o in_o io._n c._n 13._o but_o that_o we_o have_v 1_o no_o conjunction_n with_o he_o at_o all_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n that_o very_o we_o deny_v and_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o divine_a scripture_n and_o because_o you_o be_v ready_a to_o run_v to_o the_o incarnation_n it_o follow_v a_o little_a after_o do_v he_o nestorius_n think_v perchance_o that_o we_o know_v not_o the_o force_n of_o the_o mystical_a benediction_n consecration_n which_o be_v do_v in_o we_o do_v it_o not_o make_v jesus_n christ_n to_o dwell_v in_o we_o 2_o corporal_o also_o with_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o thing_n he_o do_v prove_v there_o by_o scripture_n and_o after_o declare_v with_o a_o example_n 9_o s._n aug._n l_o 2._o cont_n adu_n leg._n c._n 9_o we_o receive_v with_o faithful_a hart_n and_o 3_o mouth_n the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n man_n christ_n jesus_n give_v we_o his_o body_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v drink_v though_o it_o seem_v more_o horrible_a to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n then_o to_o kill_v and_o to_o drink_v man_n blood_n then_o to_o shed_v it_o 7._o s._n leo._n serm_n 7._o de_fw-fr jeiun_n mens_fw-la 7._o you_o ought_v so_o to_o communicate_v of_o the_o holy_a table_n that_o you_o doubt_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o be_v receive_v with_o 4_o the_o mouth_n which_o by_o faith_n be_v believe_v 37._o s._n greg._n dial._n l._n 4._o c._n 58._o s._n greg._n nyss_n orat_fw-la catec_fw-la c_o 37._o his_o blood_n be_v power_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a our_o saviour_n by_o his_o flesh_n enter_v into_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o mingle_v himself_o with_o their_o 5_o body_n to_o the_o end_n that_o man_n be_v unite_v to_o that_o which_o be_v immortal_a may_v attain_v to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o incorruption_n we_o be_v make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hearer_n of_o christ_n when_o we_o have_v receive_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n into_o 6_o our_o member_n 4._o s._n cyr._n hi._n catec_fw-la 4._o so_o the_o father_n understand_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n indeed_o to_o be_v in_o those_o dimension_n and_o so_o to_o be_v in_o our_o body_n real_o when_o the_o sacrament_n be_v in_o it_o and_o to_o be_v receive_v with_o our_o mouth_n whereas_o you_o deny_v that_o he_o can_v be_v real_o here_o and_o in_o heaven_n too_o must_v gape_v as_o wide_o as_o heaven_n if_o you_o will_v receive_v the_o sign_n and_o the_o body_n too_o with_o your_o mouth_n for_o the_o sign_n be_v here_o and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n according_a to_o you_o be_v only_o there_o in_o that_o one_o place_n 53._o the_o protestant_a opinion_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v 1_o not_o near_o unto_o our_o flesh_n christ_n be_v not_o 2_o in_o we_o corporal_o christ_n be_v not_o receive_v with_o the_o 3_o mouth_n that_o which_o be_v believe_v be_v never_o 4_o in_o the_o mouth_n never_o near_o than_o heaven_n be_v to_o the_o earth_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o where_o but_o in_o heaven_n it_o be_v in_o no_o body_n mouth_n at_o any_o tyme._n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o near_o our_o 5_o body_n it_o be_v as_o far_o of_o as_o heaven_n be_v from_o earth_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v never_o 6_o in_o us._n compare_v 54._o that_o which_o trouble_v you_o do_v not_o move_v the_o father_n to_o discredit_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o you_o do_v his_o omnipotency_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o creed_n as_o it_o be_v in_o we_o hear_v what_o they_o say_v of_o your_o doubt_n the_o first_o mat._n s._n cyr._n hi._n catec_fw-la 4_o s._n chrys_n ho._n ●3_n mat._n sense_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v bread_n s._n cyrill_n though_o it_o seem_v bread_n it_o be_v not_o bread_n s._n chrysost_o let_v our_o saviour_n word_n master_v our_o sense_n and_o reason_n his_o word_n can_v be_v untrue_a our_o sense_n be_v many_o time_n deceive_v the_o second_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o one_o to_o have_v his_o own_o body_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n s._n augustine_n in_o what_o manner_n this_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o david_n or_o another_o pure_a man_n we_o can_v find_v 1._o s._n aug._n in_o in_o psal_n 33._o conc_fw-fr 1._o but_o we_o find_v it_o fulfil_v in_o christ_n for_o christ_n be_v carry_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n when_o commend_v his_o own_o very_a body_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o than_o he_o carry_v and_o hold_v that_o body_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n if_o you_o do_v believe_v it_o be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o father_n do_v you_o will_v never_o stick_v at_o this_o nor_o at_o any_o other_o thing_n for_o all_o be_v ground_v in_o the_o sacramental_a be_v the_o three_o christ_n can_v not_o eat_v himself_o the_o sacrament_n he_o may_v and_o do_v eat_v s._n jerom._n he_o 2._o s._n hieron_n ep._n ad_fw-la hedib_n q._n 2._o christ_n be_v the_o banquetter_n and_o the_o feast_n the_o eater_n and_o the_o thing_n eat_v we_o drink_v his_o blood_n etc._n etc._n the_o four_o christ_n be_v ascend_v ant._n s._n chrys_n hom_n 2._o ad_fw-la pop._n ant._n therefore_o his_o flesh_n be_v not_o here_o s._n chrysostom_n christ_n both_o leave_v we_o his_o flesh_n and_o ascend_v have_v it_o the_o five_o the_o body_n shall_v by_o this_o time_n be_v all_o consume_v for_o many_o thousand_o have_v receive_v it_o s._n grerie_a 37._o s._n greg._n nyss_n orat_fw-la cat._n c._n 37._o we_o must_v inquire_v how_o it_o can_v possibile_fw-la come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o one_o only_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v always_o through_o out_o the_o world_n impart_v to_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o the_o faithful_a may_v be_v whole_o in_o every_o one_o in_o particular_a and_o also_o remain_v whole_a and_o entire_a in_o itself_o his_o answer_n these_o thing_n he_o christ_n bestow_v by_o transelement_n through_o the_o virtue_n of_o benediction_n the_o nature_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o appear_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o it_o his_o body_n the_o sixth_o a_o man_n body_n can_v be_v in_o that_o form_n s._n epiphanius_n when_o he_o christ_n have_v give_v thanks_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o blood_n ancora_fw-la s_o epipha●_n in_o ancora_fw-la and_o yet_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o equal_a bigness_n nor_o yet_o like_a for_o it_o have_v no_o similitude_n with_o the_o image_n of_o that_o flesh_n which_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o nor_o with_o the_o divinity_n itself_o which_o can_v be_v see_v nor_o with_o the_o lineament_n and_o shape_n of_o member_n for_o this_o be_v of_o a_o round_a figure_n and_o according_a to_o the_o power_n insensible_a yet_o he_o vouchsafe_v by_o his_o grace_n to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o blood_n neither_o may_v any_o man_n refuse_v to_o give_v credit_n to_o his_o word_n point_n the_o real_a presence_n a_o fundamental_a point_n for_o he_o that_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v true_a fall_v altogether_o from_o grace_n and_o salvation_n 55._o be_v here_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o wish_v you_o now_o to_o consider_v how_o unpossible_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o you_o to_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o antiquity_n be_v with_o you_o against_o we_o and_o to_o make_v such_o as_o have_v wit_n and_o learning_n to_o believe_v it_o that_o which_o we_o believe_v we_o find_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o judgement_n belong_v not_o to_o you_o or_o i_o but_o to_o the_o church_n which_o if_o the_o cause_n be_v obscure_a by_o the_o divine_a assistance_n promise_v and_o present_a to_o she_o can_v determine_v it_o but_o this_o cause_n be_v clear_a the_o father_n have_v give_v as_o fair_a evidence_n as_o we_o can_v wish_v we_o can_v yet_o express_v our_o meaning_n better_o than_o they_o have_v
the_o sixth_o age_n we_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o several_a 22._o several_a council_n agath_fw-mi cap_n 470_o gerun_v den_n cap._n 1_o aurelian_a ●_o 28._o turonens_fw-la 2_o cap_n 3._o &_o 4._o constantin_n act_n 1._o citat_fw-la garret_n co._n gualt_n s._n greg._n magn._n 4._o dial._n c._n 58_o &_o hom._n 37._o in_o euam_fw-la s._n aug._n l._n 1●_n de_fw-fr civit._n c_o 22._o counsel_n celebrate_v in_o many_o nation_n wherein_o there_o be_v such_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o no_o tergiversation_n can_v suffice_v but_o omit_v that_o as_o also_o the_o testimony_n of_o remigius_n cassiodorus_n fulgentius_n and_o other_o of_o that_o time_n i_o content_v myself_o with_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v out_o of_o s._n gregory_n because_o he_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o all_o the_o world_n christ_n live_v himself_o immortal_o be_v again_o sacrifice_v for_o we_o in_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a oblation_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o sift_n age_n live_v s._n augustine_n when_o melchisedech_n do_v bless_v abraham_n there_o first_o appear_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v now_o to_o god_n by_o christian_n in_o all_o the_o world_n we_o do_v not_o erect_v altar_n wherein_o to_o sacrifice_v to_o martyr_n 10._o idem_fw-la l._n 22_o c._n 10._o but_o we_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o their_o god_n and_o we_o the_o sacrifice_n itself_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o jew_n open_v your_o eye_n at_o leingth_n ibid._n ibid._n and_o see_v from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n not_o in_o one_o place_n as_o it_o be_v appoint_v you_o but_o in_o every_o place_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n 38._o idem_fw-la orat_fw-la cont_n jud._n c_o 9.10.6_o vide_fw-la eundem_fw-la de_fw-la civit._n l._n 17._o c._n 17._o &_o l._n 18._o c._n 35._o s._n jerom._n adu_fw-la vigilant_a c._n 3._o vide_fw-la s._n amb._n ad_fw-la ps_n 38._o not_o to_o what_o god_n soever_o but_o to_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o foretell_v it_o in_o the_o four_o age_n live_v s._n jerome_n ill_o therefore_o do_v the_o bysshop_n of_o rome_n who_o over_o the_o venerable_a bone_n base_a dust_n according_a to_o thou_o vigilantius_n of_o dead_a man_n peter_n and_o paul_n do_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o think_v their_o tomb_n to_o be_v altar_n and_o this_o the_o bishops_z not_o of_o one_o town_n only_o but_o of_o all_z the_o world_n do_v who_o contemn_v vigilantius_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n speak_v of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n thou_o have_v prepare_v a_o table_n in_o my_o sight_n etc._n etc._n he_o do_v say_v he_o 10._o euseb_n caesar_n demonstr_n euang_n l._n 1._o c._n 10._o in_o this_o open_o signify_v the_o mystical_a unction_n and_o horrour-bringing_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o table_n of_o christ_n wherein_o operate_a we_o be_v teach_v to_o offer_v unbloody_a and_o reasonable_a and_o sweet_a victimes_o in_o our_o whole_a life_n to_o the_o most_o high_a god_n by_o his_o most_o eminent_a priest_n of_o all_o and_o a_o little_a after_o upon_o a_o place_n of_o esaie_n they_o shall_v drink_v wine_n etc._n etc._n ibid._n ibid._n he_o do_v prophecy_n to_o the_o gentile_n say_v he_o the_o joy_n of_o wine_n signify_v therein_o somewhat_o obscure_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o christ_n institute_v constant_n idem_fw-la orat_fw-la de_fw-fr l●●d_n constant_n which_o at_o this_o day_n very_o be_v open_o celebrate_v in_o all_o nation_n the_o same_o man_n in_o his_o oration_n in_o the_o commendation_n of_o constantine_n tell_v of_o church_n altar_n 3._o vide_fw-la cyp._n l._n 2._o ep._n 3._o and_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o three_o age_n saint_n cyprian_n do_v live_v who_o say_v 9_o s._n cypr._n lib_n 1._o ep_v 9_o all_o that_o be_v honour_v with_o divine_a priesthood_n and_o place_v in_o clericall_a ministry_n ought_v not_o to_o serve_v but_o the_o altar_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o to_o follow_v their_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n our_o lord_n and_o god_n jesus_n christ_n be_v himself_o the_o most_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n the_o father_n 3._o idem_fw-la lib._n ●_o ep_v 3._o and_o he_o first_o of_o all_o have_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o have_v command_v the_o same_o to_o be_v do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o tertullian_n 32._o tertall_a l._n ad_fw-la scapul_n c._n 2._o s._n iren._n l._n 4._o adu_fw-la hear_v c._n 32._o we_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o our_o god_n and_o he_o in_o the_o second_o age_n live_v ireneus_fw-la and_o justinus_n both_o saint_n the_o one_o say_v he_o christ_n take_v that_o bread_n which_o be_v of_o the_o creature_n and_o give_v thanks_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o likewise_o he_o confess_v the_o chalice_n which_o be_v of_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v according_a unto_o we_o to_o be_v his_o blood_n and_o teach_v the_o new_a oblation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_z the_o apostle_n do_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o all_o the_o world_n tryphone_n s._n justin_n dial._n cum_fw-la tryphone_n the_o other_o even_o than_o he_o malichias_n foretell_v of_o our_o sacrifice_n of_o gentile_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o every_o place_n that_o be_v of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o cup_n likewise_o of_o the_o eucharist_n etc._n etc._n ibid._n ibid._n god_n prevent_v do_v witness_v all_o those_o to_o be_v grateful_a unto_o he_o who_o offer_v through_o his_o name_n the_o sacrifice_n which_o jesus_n christ_n deliver_v to_o be_v do_v that_o be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n of_o bread_n and_o the_o chalice_n which_o be_v do_v by_o christian_n in_o every_o place_n 76._o and_o here_o i_o name_v again_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o alexandria_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o aethiopia_n wherein_o be_v evident_a acknowledgement_n of_o this_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n in_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n whereof_o i_o speak_v in_o so_o much_o that_o all_o these_o liturgy_n and_o general_o the_o liturgy_n of_o all_o know_a christian_a church_n that_o ever_o yet_o be_v of_o any_o note_n in_o the_o world_n consent_n and_o agree_v herein_o if_o you_o deny_v these_o be_v ancient_a i_o bring_v against_o you_o all_o these_o church_n who_o profess_v and_o believe_v to_o have_v receive_v they_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n thus_o other_o book_n have_v be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o from_o antiquity_n and_o this_o tradition_n must_v have_v equal_a force_n in_o the_o deliver_v of_o these_o book_n i_o add_v further_o that_o all_o church_n can_v err_v in_o tradition_n of_o book_n otherwise_o you_o can_v neither_o be_v certain_a of_o any_o work_n of_o any_o father_n as_o of_o s._n augustine_n s._n jerom_n etc._n etc._n nor_o of_o any_o part_n of_o the_o bible_n since_o therefore_o all_o know_a church_n agree_v in_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o liturgy_n from_o the_o apostle_n you_o must_v believe_v it_o or_o else_o with_o the_o same_o pretence_n you_o may_v refuse_v the_o bible_n too_o 77._o next_o i_o name_v the_o apostle_n who_o teach_v a_o propitiatory_a unbloody_a sacrifice_n in_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o do_v also_o say_v mass_n our_o b._n saviour_n also_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n do_v offer_v this_o die_v sacrifice_n extant_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sacrificantibus_fw-la autem_fw-la illis_fw-la domino_fw-la act._n 13._o v._n 2._o vert_fw-fr eras_n remember_v what_o i_o cite_v but_o now_o out_o of_o s._n ireneus_fw-la the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n s._n matthew_n and_o saint_n mark_n be_v yet_o extant_a as_o i_o have_v declare_v by_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o you_o can_v avoid_v it_o if_o you_o take_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n in_o their_o proper_a sense_n as_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o do_v so_o well_o be_v the_o mass_n ground_v for_o which_o we_o suffer_v now_o in_o the_o mass_n you_o be_v to_o distinguish_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n oblation_n consecration_n and_o the_o consumption_n of_o the_o sacred_a host_n or_o eat_v of_o the_o victim_n in_o this_o unbloodie_a form_n by_o the_o priest_n from_o the_o epistle_n gospel_n prayer_n ceremony_n etc._n etc._n the_o first_o be_v ever_o since_o and_o every_o where_o the_o same_o the_o second_o not_o name_n of_o saint_n prayer_n ceremony_n may_v be_v and_o yet_o may_v be_v change_v by_o the_o church_n 78._o to_o all_o this_o i_o add_v further_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o interpreter_n of_o god_n word_n for_o that_o sense_n wherein_o the_o catholic_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n do_v and_o ever_o do_v from_o the_o begin_n universallie_o consent_n
be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o spiritte_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n of_o unbloodie_a exterior_a sacrifice_n in_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o catholic_a church_n diffuse_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v and_o ever_o do_v universallie_o consent_v as_o i_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v 76._o last_o take_v the_o christian_a church_n thus_o believe_v and_o practise_v and_o compare_v it_o to_o the_o prophecy_n i_o confound_v the_o jew_n too_o and_o make_v a_o in_o evitable_a demonstration_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o communion_n of_o all_o nation_n thus_o offer_v a_o clean_a oblation_n to_o god_n every_o where_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o shake_v those_o people_n of_o with_o that_o of_o malachi_n my_o will_n be_v not_o in_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o guifte_n i_o will_v not_o receive_v at_o your_o hand_n 11._o mal._n 1._o v._n 10_o 11._o for_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n even_o to_o the_o go_v down_o my_o name_n be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o there_o be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n a_o clean_a oblation_n because_o my_o name_n be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o ten_o chapter_n tradition_n 80._o be_v not_o able_a with_o your_o silly_a argument_n to_o drive_v we_o from_o the_o mass_n you_o grow_v desperate_a and_o run_v foolish_o into_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o canon_n it_o be_v declare_v at_o nice_a and_o since_o again_o at_o trent_n 4._o conc._n nicen_n 2._o act_n 7._o conc._n tr._n sess_v 4._o that_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v without_o it_o you_o can_v know_v nothing_o in_o divine_a matter_n because_o it_o must_v reach_v you_o the_o scripture_n wherein_o you_o pretend_v to_o ground_n yourself_o yet_o because_o it_o do_v withal_o offer_v more_o than_o you_o be_v willing_a to_o receive_v you_o speak_v against_o it_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o it_o sufficient_o in_o the_o first_o and_o three_o book_n but_o since_o you_o repeat_v your_o argument_n i_o will_v resume_v also_o part_n of_o my_o discourse_n 8_n the_o doctrine_n of_o tradition_n be_v ground_v in_o the_o scripture_n 15._o 2._o thess_n 2._o v._n 15._o hold_v and_o observe_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v either_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o by_o our_o letter_n here_o be_v distinguish_v as_o you_o see_v plain_o two_o way_n of_o deliver_v the_o sacred_a truth_n and_o instruction_n one_o be_v by_o writing_n the_o other_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v and_o observe_v if_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v judge_n in_o the_o matter_n whether_o it_o be_v deliver_v the_o one_o way_n or_o the_o other_o the_o same_o in_o another_o place_n also_o he_o do_v teach_v writing_n unto_o timothy_n thus_o 2._o 2_o tim._n 2._o five_o 2._o the_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o by_o many_o witness_n commend_v unto_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v fit_n to_o teach_v other_o also_o this_o be_v the_o care_n the_o apostle_n do_v take_v that_o what_o he_o have_v say_v may_v be_v convey_v unto_o posterity_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n commend_v unto_o they_o say_v he_o which_o shall_v be_v fit_n he_o do_v not_o say_v to_o write_v but_o to_o teach_v these_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o he_o do_v not_o say_v which_o thou_o have_v read_v but_o hear_v and_o that_o open_o by_o many_o witness_n this_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n be_v to_o be_v conserve_v by_o teach_v other_o and_o this_o be_v the_o sacred_a depositum_fw-la where_o of_o he_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n refer_v the_o good_a keep_n thereof_o to_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 14._o 2._o tim._n 1._o five_o 14._o keep_v the_o good_a depositum_fw-la by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o dwell_v in_o us._n which_o be_v conformable_a to_o our_o saviour_n promise_n in_o s._n john_n he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o suggest_v unto_o you_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o he_o say_v not_o whatsoever_o shall_v be_v write_v but_o whatsoever_o i_o shall_v say_v and_o god_n the_o father_n in_o his_o promise_n to_o the_o church_n 21_o isa_n 59_o v._n 21_o my_o word_n that_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n etc._n etc._n which_o word_n be_v more_o general_a then_o if_o he_o have_v say_v thus_o the_o scripture_n shall_v never_o be_v out_o of_o thy_o eye_n or_o thou_o shall_v be_v ever_o read_v that_o which_o i_o will_v cause_v to_o be_v write_v or_o it_o shall_v never_o out_o of_o the_o book_n whereinsoever_o i_o shall_v write_v it_o he_o say_v not_o so_o but_z my_o word_n shall_v not_o out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o thy_o seed_n from_o hence_o forth_o for_o ever_o a_o clear_a testimony_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o sacred_a doctrine_n ever_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n we_o call_v tradition_n 82._o hereupon_o saint_n ireneus_fw-la a_o man_n near_o unto_o the_o apostle_n time_n 2.3.4_o ●_o iren._n l._n 3._o ●du_fw-la haeres_fw-la ●_o 2.3.4_o and_o well_o see_v in_o their_o doctrine_n do_v say_v that_o the_o tradition_n in_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v keep_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o the_o apostle_n lay_v up_o in_o the_o church_n as_o in_o a_o rich_a depositorie_n all_o truth_n and_o that_o therefore_o for_o resolution_n of_o controversy_n recourse_n be_v to_o be_v make_v unto_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n so_o likewise_o tertullian_n one_o also_o of_o those_o who_o be_v near_o unto_o the_o apostle_n time_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o in_o disputation_n with_o heretic_n we_o be_v not_o to_o appeal_v unto_o the_o scripture_n 19_o tertull._n praesc_fw-la c._n 19_o because_o heretic_n will_v interpret_v as_o they_o listen_v but_o that_o we_o must_v inquire_v where_o the_o faith_n where_o the_o church_n be_v from_o who_o by_o who_o when_o and_o to_o who_o the_o discipline_n have_v be_v deliver_v whereby_o christian_n be_v make_v for_o where_o it_o shall_v appeal_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o discipline_n and_o christian_a faith_n be_v there_o will_v be_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o exposition_n and_o of_o all_o christian_a tradition_n we_o must_v use_v tradition_n 69._o s._n epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 61._o vide_fw-la eundem_fw-la in_o haeresi_fw-la 55._o &_o 69._o say_v s._n epiphanius_n because_o all_o thing_n can_v be_v have_v out_o of_o divine_a scripture_n wherefore_o the_o holy_a apostle_n have_v deliver_v some_o thing_n by_o scripture_n and_o some_o thing_n by_o tradition_n many_o thing_n say_v saint_n augustine_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o in_o the_o constitution_n of_o late_a counsel_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o commend_v by_o they_o the_o apostle_n because_o by_o the_o universal_a church_n they_o be_v observe_v 7._o s._n august_n l._n 2._o bapt_n c._n donat._n c._n 7._o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v observe_v and_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n we_o have_v partly_o by_o the_o write_a word_n and_o partly_o we_o have_v have_v they_o bring_v unto_o we_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n ●_o s._n basil_n l._n de_fw-fr sp_z s_o c._n 27._o ib._n c._n 29._o s._n chrys_n in_o 2._o thess_n ●_o say_v s._n basil_n and_o in_o another_o place_n i_o esteem_v it_o apostolical_a to_o persevere_v in_o unwritten_a tradition_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v s._n john_n chrysostome_n that_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v not_o all_o by_o letter_n but_o many_o thing_n without_o writing_n and_o these_o the_o unwritten_a be_v as_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v as_o those_o other_o deliver_v by_o write_v wherefore_o we_o think_v the_o church_n tradition_n worthy_a of_o belief_n it_o be_v a_o tradition_n 2._o vincent_n lirin_fw-mi c._n 1._o &_o 2._o look_v no_o more_o to_o conclude_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o profane_a novelty_n of_o heresy_n do_v tell_v that_o he_o learn_v of_o wise_a and_o holy_a man_n this_o way_n to_o persevere_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n to_o fence_v it_o as_o he_o say_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o with_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o object_v present_o to_o himself_o as_o if_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v not_o necessary_a because_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a because_o all_o man_n understand_v not_o the_o scripture_n the_o same_o way_n because_o of_o the_o depth_n
of_o it_o which_o he_o declare_v large_o in_o old_a heretic_n and_o the_o same_o we_o see_v in_o the_o modern_a by_o experience_n and_o then_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v therefore_o very_o necessary_a in_o regard_n of_o so_o many_o wind_n of_o error_n to_o direct_v the_o line_n of_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a interpretation_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_a sense_n 83._o this_o be_v here_o sufficient_a for_o tradition_n divine_a and_o apostolical_a which_o the_o spiritte_v of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o lead_v unto_o all_o truth_n do_v distinguish_v from_o such_o as_o be_v false_a and_o superstitious_a and_o do_v easy_o defend_v against_o all_o you_o can_v say_v the_o scripture_n have_v not_o one_o word_n against_o they_o as_o any_o man_n will_v easy_o see_v who_o do_v but_o mark_v what_o he_o do_v read_v and_o will_v not_o take_v speak_v for_o writing_n which_o the_o most_o ignorant_a with_o attention_n can_v distinguish_v in_o themselves_o be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o one_o and_o not_o the_o other_o and_o the_o father_n be_v clear_a as_o you_o have_v see_v require_v ever_o tradition_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v require_v for_o the_o scripture_n and_o for_o the_o sense_n though_o the_o write_a word_n be_v perfect_a within_o its_o own_o bound_n you_o also_o though_o you_o loathe_v it_o never_o so_o much_o must_v needs_o admit_v of_o it_o for_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o number_n of_o canonical_a book_n for_o the_o pars_fw-la of_o they_o for_o the_o sense_n and_o for_o other_o thing_n you_o be_v not_o able_a any_o other_o way_n in_o the_o world_n to_o answer_n any_o man_n who_o will_v deny_v they_o or_o to_o persuade_v he_o to_o believe_v that_o you_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o moreover_o this_o doctrine_n be_v by_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n define_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o trent_n and_o have_v be_v the_o mean_n whereby_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v conserve_v until_o now_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o contrary_a open_a heresy_n be_v opposite_a unto_o god_n express_a word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v down_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o old_a father_n of_o general_a counsel_n and_o of_o the_o church_n 84_o the_o text_n all_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a etc._n etc._n be_v answer_v in_o the_o first_o book_n 4._o c._n 4._o it_o be_v profitable_a true_a but_o it_o be_v not_o all_o sufficient_a it_o be_v sufficient_a too_o in_o one_o kind_n for_o the_o write_a word_n but_o nor_o in_o all_o kind_n not_o all-sufficient_a tradition_n and_o divine_a assistance_n be_v necessary_a too_o each_o in_o their_o kind_n do_v concur_v tradition_n be_v more_o general_a than_o writing_n it_o deliver_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o and_o can_v teach_v also_o without_o writing_n and_o do_v before_o the_o scripture_n be_v extant_a this_o tradition_n rely_v upon_o the_o divine_a assistance_n whereof_o i_o have_v discourse_v large_o the_o three_o book_n and_o need_v not_o repeat_v it_o here_o particular_a cause_n in_o this_o low_a world_n be_v sufficient_a in_o their_o kind_n a_o horse_n to_o generate_v a_o horse_n a_o man_n to_o generate_v a_o man_n but_o the_o effect_n be_v not_o produce_v without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o high_a cause_n the_o sun_n and_o a_o man_n say_v the_o philosopher_n produce_v a_o man_n the_o inferior_a and_o superior_a cause_n be_v sufficient_a in_o their_o kind_n and_o yet_o unless_o the_o prime_a and_o most_o universal_a cause_n do_v concur_v nothing_o be_v produce_v you_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o scriture_n be_v sufficient_a in_o all_o kind_n if_o you_o will_v exclude_v tradition_n to_o all_o your_o peach_a your_o mouth_n be_v profitable_a and_o sufficient_a too_o in_o that_o kind_n you_o need_v not_o two_o mouth_n but_o without_o a_o tongue_n you_o can_v do_v it_o mouth_n and_o tongue_n be_v profitable_a and_o sufficient_a in_o their_o kind_n but_o you_o can_v do_v it_o without_o brain_n brain_n and_o wit_n be_v profitable_a and_o sufficient_a in_o their_o kind_n but_o all_o will_v not_o serve_v without_o learning_n so_o that_o you_o see_v the_o argument_n be_v not_o good_a it_o be_v profitable_a and_o to_o all_o therefore_o all-sufficient_a 85._o and_o thus_o i_o be_o come_v at_o last_o to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o part_n also_o have_v answer_v the_o chief_a thing_n which_o you_o oppose_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n and_o show_v how_o the_o church_n representative_a be_v uniustlie_o accuse_v of_o error_n the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n be_v believe_v before_o caluin_n have_v any_o school_n and_o will_v be_v when_o he_o have_v never_o a_o scholar_n in_o they_o be_v the_o high_a teach_v authority_n in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o the_o scholar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n must_v believe_v what_o they_o define_v the_o sheep_n be_v not_o to_o choose_v their_o pasture_n old_a wife_n and_o plowman_n be_v not_o to_o decide_v controversy_n in_o religion_n they_o be_v not_o to_o ascend_v the_o chair_n and_o expound_v scripture_n to_o the_o world_n no_o the_o pastor_n must_v do_v this_o 4._o mat._n 28._o act._n 20.10.21_o ephes_n 4._o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n be_v send_v to_o teach_v god_n put_v bishop_n to_o rule_v the_o church_n he_o charge_v peter_n to_o feed_v his_o flock_n the_o pastor_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o sheep_n to_o learn_v 86._o in_o general_a counsel_n the_o pastor_n be_v be_v assemble_v their_o authority_n be_v unite_v there_o to_o move_v the_o whole_a to_o teach_v the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v to_o follow_v their_o common_a direction_n and_o therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o god_n providence_n to_o assist_v they_o define_v and_o the_o whole_a church_n universallie_o do_v believe_v that_o such_o counsel_n be_v assist_v and_o can_v err_v learned_a unlearned_a people_n and_o pastor_n all_o believe_v it_o and_o all_o the_o church_n as_o i_o show_v you_o before_o can_v err_v the_o apostle_n do_v believe_v it_o also_o and_o so_o understand_v the_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 16._o act._n 15._o io._n 16._o when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v teach_v they_o all_o truth_n god_n rule_v and_o move_v the_o low_a world_n by_o the_o high_a the_o heaven_n virtue_n do_v begette_v and_o conserve_v thing_n here_o on_o earth_n to_o the_o heaven_n for_o the_o regularitie_n of_o their_o motion_n he_o have_v addict_v a_o intelligence_n our_o saviour_n have_v so_o dispose_v his_o church_n that_o the_o laity_n be_v move_v and_o govern_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o the_o clergy_n 10._o rom._n 20._o rom._n 10._o the_o pastor_n begette_n and_o conserve_v in_o the_o people_n faith_n by_o preach_v the_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o pastor_n for_o the_o regularitie_n of_o their_o motion_n he_o have_v leave_v a_o assist_v spirit_n 16._o io._n 16._o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o christian_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v in_o the_o school_n of_o jesꝰ_n christ_n this_o school_n be_v the_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o high_a chaier_n in_o it_o be_v a_o perfect_a ecumenical_a council_n no_o man_n have_v or_o can_v with_o any_o appearance_n pretend_v as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o examination_n a_o full_a participation_n of_o the_o teach_v power_n than_o such_o a_o council_n 87._o to_o make_v a_o end_n therefore_o consider_v well_o what_o i_o do_v say_v that_o definition_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n universallie_o act_n of_o church_n proposition_n there_o be_v more_o in_o the_o three_o book_n where_o i_o have_v also_o tell_v you_o how_o the_o divine_a authority_n and_o the_o church_n authority_n do_v move_v both_o in_o several_a kind_n to_o the_o same_o act_n do_v take_v for_o a_o sufficient_a direction_n of_o her_o faith_n by_o way_n of_o proposition_n be_v free_a from_o error_n otherwise_o the_o catholic_a church_n universallie_o may_v err_v which_o be_v unpossible_a as_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o three_o book_n now_o the_o catholic_a church_n universallie_o do_v take_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n which_o she_o esteem_v ecumenical_a to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a direction_n of_o her_o faith_n by_o way_n of_o proposition_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v there_o also_o and_o hence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o council_n esteem_a by_o the_o catholic_a church_n ecumenical_a be_v free_a from_o error_n will_v you_o have_v another_o way_n without_o recourse_n to_o such_o a_o council_n take_v this_o what_o the_o bishop_n diffuse_v those_o i_o mean_v who_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a communion_n do_v uniformelie_o teach_v be_v true_a if_o you_o shall_v oppose_v that_o they_o be_v many_o and_o that_o you_o can_v know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o they_o all_o be_v diffuse_v i_o will_v answer_v that_o by_o their_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a their_o doctrine_n be_v know_v sufficient_o for_o this_o purpose_n and_o their_o communion_n be_v very_o manifest_a unto_o all_o where_o you_o must_v note_v that_o it_o be_v the_o exterior_a profession_n which_o i_o attend_v unto_o proposition_n proposition_n this_o be_v easy_o know_v and_o this_o as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v uniform_a in_o all_z bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a communion_n be_v they_o many_o or_o few_o so_o they_o be_v all_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o this_o exterior_a proposition_n or_o common_a doctrine_n whatsoever_o else_o any_o of_o they_o think_v secret_o in_o their_o mind_n i_o be_o to_o be_v direct_v 28.10.16_o ephes_n 4._o mat._n 28.10.16_o he_o christ_n give_v pastor_n that_o we_o be_v not_o waver_v teach_v all_o nation_n and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n if_o you_o dispute_v again_o meddle_v not_o with_o point_n not_o yet_o agree_v upon_o among_o us._n talk_v not_o of_o thing_n controvert_v in_o our_o school_n at_o this_o day_n the_o proposition_n which_o you_o oppose_v if_o you_o will_v oppose_v i_o must_v be_v a_o catholic_a proposition_n agree_v on_o general_o by_o the_o church_n other_o thing_n i_o can_v dispute_v in_o our_o own_o school_n and_o with_o such_o as_o know_v they_o better_o than_o you_o do_v